Title:   The Anglo-Saxon Chronicle

Subject:  

Author:   Anonymous

Keywords:  

Creator:  

PDF Version:   1.2



Contents:

Page No 1

Page No 2

Page No 3

Page No 4

Page No 5

Page No 6

Page No 7

Page No 8

Page No 9

Page No 10

Page No 11

Page No 12

Page No 13

Page No 14

Page No 15

Page No 16

Page No 17

Page No 18

Page No 19

Page No 20

Page No 21

Page No 22

Page No 23

Page No 24

Page No 25

Page No 26

Page No 27

Page No 28

Page No 29

Page No 30

Page No 31

Page No 32

Page No 33

Page No 34

Page No 35

Page No 36

Page No 37

Page No 38

Page No 39

Page No 40

Page No 41

Page No 42

Page No 43

Page No 44

Page No 45

Page No 46

Page No 47

Page No 48

Page No 49

Page No 50

Page No 51

Page No 52

Page No 53

Page No 54

Page No 55

Page No 56

Page No 57

Page No 58

Page No 59

Page No 60

Page No 61

Page No 62

Page No 63

Page No 64

Page No 65

Page No 66

Page No 67

Page No 68

Page No 69

Page No 70

Page No 71

Page No 72

Page No 73

Page No 74

Page No 75

Page No 76

Page No 77

Page No 78

Page No 79

Page No 80

Page No 81

Page No 82

Page No 83

Page No 84

Page No 85

Page No 86

Page No 87

Page No 88

Page No 89

Page No 90

Page No 91

Page No 92

Page No 93

Page No 94

Page No 95

Page No 96

Page No 97

Page No 98

Page No 99

Page No 100

Page No 101

Page No 102

Page No 103

Page No 104

Page No 105

Page No 106

Page No 107

Page No 108

Page No 109

Page No 110

Page No 111

Page No 112

Page No 113

Page No 114

Page No 115

Page No 116

Page No 117

Page No 118

Page No 119

Page No 120

Page No 121

Page No 122

Page No 123

Page No 124

Page No 125

Bookmarks





Page No 1


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Anonymous



Top




Page No 2


Table of Contents

The AngloSaxon Chronicle..............................................................................................................................1

Anonymous ..............................................................................................................................................1

PREPARER'S NOTE:  .............................................................................................................................1

ORIGINAL INTRODUCTION TO INGRAM'S EDITION [1823] ........................................................2

THE ANGLOSAXON CHRONICLE .................................................................................................10

Part I .......................................................................................................................................................10

Part II.....................................................................................................................................................28

Part III....................................................................................................................................................45

Part IV ....................................................................................................................................................60

Part V.....................................................................................................................................................74

Part VI ....................................................................................................................................................87

Part VII .................................................................................................................................................100


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

i



Top




Page No 3


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Anonymous

Translation by Rev. James Ingram

Preparer's Note 

Introduction 

Part 1: A.D. 1  748 

Part 2: A.D. 750  919 

Part 3: A.D. 920  1014 

Part 4: A.D. 1015  1051 

Part 5: A.D. 1052  1069 

Part 6: A.D. 1070  1101 

Part 7: A.D. 1102  1154  

        Originally compiled on the orders of King Alfred the Great,

        approximately A.D. 890, and subsequently maintained and added to by

        generations of anonymous scribes until the middle of the 12th Century.

        The original language is AngloSaxon (Old English), but later entries

        are essentially Middle English in tone. 

Translation by Rev. James Ingram (London, 1823), with additional readings from the translation of Dr. J.A.

Giles (London, 1847).

PREPARER'S NOTE:

At present there are nine known versions or fragments of the "AngloSaxon Chronicle" in existence, all of

which vary (sometimes greatly) in content and quality. The translation that follows is not a translation of any

one Chronicle; rather, it is a collation of readings from many different versions. The nine known

"AngloSaxon Chronicle" MS. are the following: APrime The Parker Chronicle (Corpus Christi College,

Cambridge, MS. 173) A Cottonian Fragment (British Museum, Cotton MS. Otho B xi, 2) B The Abingdon

Chronicle I (British Museum, Cotton MS. Tiberius A vi.) C The Abingdon Chronicle II (British Museum,

Cotton MS. Tiberius B i.) D The Worcester Chronicle (British Museum, Cotton MS.Tiberius B iv.) E The

Laud (or "Peterborough") Chronicle (Bodleian, MS.Laud 636) F The Bilingual Canterbury Epitome (British

Museum, Cotton MS. Domitian A viii.) NOTE: Entries in English and Latin. H Cottonian Fragment (British

Museum, Cotton MS. Domitian A ix.) I An Easter Table Chronicle (British Museum, Cotton MS.Caligula A

xv.) This electronic edition contains primarily the translation of Rev. James Ingram, as published in the

Everyman edition of this text. Excerpts from the translation of Dr. J.A. Giles were included as an appendix in

the Everyman edition; the preparer of this edition has elected to collate these entries into the main text of the

translation. Where these collations have occurred I have marked the entry with a double parenthesis (()).

WARNING: While I have elected to include the footnotes of Rev. Ingram in this edition, please note that

they should be used with extreme care. In many cases the views expressed by Rev. Ingram are severally out

of date, having been superseded by almost 175 years of active scholarship. At best, these notes will provide a

starting point for inquiry. They should not, however, be treated as absolute. Douglas B. Killings

The AngloSaxon Chronicle 1



Top




Page No 4


ORIGINAL INTRODUCTION TO INGRAM'S EDITION [1823]

England may boast of two substantial monuments of its early history; to either of which it would not be easy

to find a parallel in any nation, ancient or modern. These are, the Record of Doomsday (1) and the "Saxon

Chronicle" (2). The former, which is little more than a statistical survey, but contains the most authentic

information relative to the descent of property and the comparative importance of the different parts of the

kingdom at a very interesting period, the wisdom and liberality of the British Parliament long since deemed

worthy of being printed (3) among the Public Records, by Commissioners appointed for that purpose. The

other work, though not treated with absolute neglect, has not received that degree of attention which every

person who feels an interest in the events and transactions of former times would naturally expect. In the first

place, it has never been printed entire, from a collation of all the MSS. But of the extent of the two former

editions, compared with the present, the reader may form some idea, when he is told that Professor Wheloc's

"Chronologia AngloSaxonica", which was the first attempt (4) of the kind, published at Cambridge in 1644,

is comprised in less than 62 folio pages, exclusive of the Latin appendix. The improved edition by Edmund

Gibson, afterwards Bishop of London, printed at Oxford in 1692, exhibits nearly four times the quantity of

the former; but is very far from being the entire (5) chronicle, as the editor considered it. The text of the

present edition, it was found, could not be compressed within a shorter compass than 374 pages, though the

editor has suppressed many notes and illustrations, which may be thought necessary to the general reader.

Some variations in the MSS. may also still remain unnoticed; partly because they were considered of little

importance, and partly from an apprehension, lest the commentary, as it sometimes happens, should seem an

unwieldy burthen, rather than a necessary appendage, to the text. Indeed, till the editor had made some

progress in the work, he could not have imagined that so many original and authentic materials of our history

still remained unpublished.

To those who are unacquainted with this monument of our national antiquities, two questions appear requisite

to be answered:  "What does it contain?" and, "By whom was it written?" The indulgence of the critical

antiquary is solicited, whilst we endeavour to answer, in some degree, each of these questions.

To the first question we answer, that the "Saxon Chronicle" contains the original and authentic testimony of

contemporary writers to the most important transactions of our forefathers, both by sea and land, from their

first arrival in this country to the year 1154. Were we to descend to particulars, it would require a volume to

discuss the great variety of subjects which it embraces. Suffice it to say, that every reader will here find many

interesting facts relative to our architecture, our agriculture, our coinage, our commerce, our naval and

military glory, our laws, our liberty, and our religion. In this edition, also, will be found numerous specimens

of Saxon poetry, never before printed, which might form the groundwork of an introductory volume to

Warton's elaborate annals of English Poetry. Philosophically considered, this ancient record is the second

great phenomenon in the history of mankind. For, if we except the sacred annals of the Jews, contained in the

several books of the Old Testament, there is no other work extant, ancient or modern, which exhibits at one

view a regular and chronological panorama of a PEOPLE, described in rapid succession by different writers,

through so many ages, in their own vernacular LANGUAGE. Hence it may safely be considered, nor only as

the primaeval source from which all subsequent historians of English affairs have principally derived their

materials, and consequently the criterion by which they are to be judged, but also as the faithful depository of

our national idiom; affording, at the same time, to the scientific investigator of the human mind a very

interesting and extraordinary example of the changes incident to a language, as well as to a nation, in its

progress from rudeness to refinement.

But that the reader may more clearly see how much we are indebted to the "Saxon Chronicle", it will be

necessary to examine what is contained in other sources of our history, prior to the accession of Henry II., the

period wherein this invaluable record terminates.


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

ORIGINAL INTRODUCTION TO INGRAM'S EDITION [1823] 2



Top




Page No 5


The most ancient historian of our own island, whose work has been preserved, is Gildas, who flourished in

the latter part of the sixth century. British antiquaries of the present day will doubtless forgive me, if I leave

in their original obscurity the prophecies of Merlin, and the exploits of King Arthur, with all the Knights of

the Round Table, as scarcely coming within the verge of history. Notwithstanding, also, the authority of Bale,

and of the writers whom he follows, I cannot persuade myself to rank Joseph of Arimathea, Arviragus, and

Bonduca, or even the Emperor Constantine himself, among the illustrious writers of Great Britain. I begin,

therefore, with Gildas; because, though he did not compile a regular history of the island, he has left us,

amidst a cumbrous mass of pompous rhapsody and querulous declamation some curious descriptions of the

character and manners of the inhabitants; not only the Britons and Saxons, but the Picts and Scots (6). There

are also some parts of his work, almost literally transcribed by Bede, which confirm the brief statements of

the "Saxon Chronicle" (7). But there is, throughout, such a want of precision and simplicity, such a

barrenness of facts amidst a multiplicity of words, such a scantiness of names of places and persons, of dates,

and other circumstances, that we are obliged to have recourse to the Saxon Annals, or to Venerable Bede, to

supply the absence of those two great lights of history  Chronology and Topography.

The next historian worth notice here is Nennius, who is supposed to have flourished in the seventh century:

but the work ascribed to him is so full of interpolations and corruptions, introduced by his transcribers, and

particularly by a simpleton who is called Samuel, or his master Beulanus, or both, who appear to have lived

in the ninth century, that it is difficult to say how much of this motley production is original and authentic. Be

that as it may, the writer of the copy printed by Gale bears ample testimony to the "Saxon Chronicle", and

says expressly, that he compiled his history partly from the records of the Scots and Saxons (8). At the end is

a confused but very curious appendix, containing that very genealogy, with some brief notices of Saxon

affairs, which the fastidiousness of Beulanus, or of his amanuensis, the aforesaid Samuel, would not allow

him to transcribe. This writer, although he professes to be the first historiographer (9) of the Britons, has

sometimes repeated the very words of Gildas (10); whose name is even prefixed to some copies of the work.

It is a puerile composition, without judgment, selection, or method (11); filled with legendary tales of Trojan

antiquity, of magical delusion, and of the miraculous exploits of St. Germain and St. Patrick: not to mention

those of the valiant Arthur, who is said to have felled to the ground in one day, singlehanded, eight hundred

and forty Saxons! It is remarkable, that this taste for the marvelous, which does not seem to be adapted to the

sober sense of Englishmen, was afterwards revived in all its glory by Geoffrey of Monmouth in the Norman

age of credulity and romance.

We come now to a more cheering prospect; and behold a steady light reflected on the "Saxon Chronicle" by

the "Ecclesiastical History" of Bede; a writer who, without the intervention of any legendary tale, truly

deserves the title of Venerable (12). With a store of classical learning not very common in that age, and with

a simplicity of language seldom found in monastic Latinity, he has moulded into something like a regular

form the scattered fragments of Roman, British, Scottish, and Saxon history. His work, indeed. is professedly

ecclesiastical; but, when we consider the prominent station which the Church had at this time assumed in

England, we need not be surprised if we find therein the same intermixture of civil, military, and

ecclesiastical affairs, which forms so remarkable a feature in the "Saxon Chronicle". Hence Gibson

concludes, that many passages of the latter description were derived from the work of Bede (13). He thinks

the same of the description of Britain, the notices of the Roman emperors, and the detail of the first arrival of

the Saxons. But, it may be observed, those passages to which he alludes are not to be found in the earlier

MSS. The description of Britain, which forms the introduction, and refers us to a period antecedent to the

invasion of Julius Caesar; appears only in three copies of the "Chronicle"; two of which are of so late a date

as the Norman Conquest, and both derived from the same source. Whatever relates to the succession of the

Roman emperors was so universally known, that it must be considered as common property: and so short was

the interval between the departure of the Romans and the arrival of the Saxons, that the latter must have

preserved amongst them sufficient memorials and traditions to connect their own history with that of their

predecessors. Like all rude nations, they were particularly attentive to genealogies; and these, together with

the succession of their kings, their battles, and their conquests, must be derived originally from the Saxons


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

ORIGINAL INTRODUCTION TO INGRAM'S EDITION [1823] 3



Top




Page No 6


themselves. and not from Gildas, or Nennius, or Bede (14). Gibson himself was so convinced of this, that he

afterwards attributes to the "Saxon Chronicle" all the knowledge we have of those early times (15).

Moreover, we might ask, if our whole dependence had been centered in Bede, what would have become of us

after his death? (16) Malmsbury indeed asserts, with some degree of vanity, that you will not easily find a

Latin historian of English affairs between Bede and himself (17); and in the fulness of selfcomplacency

professes his determination, "to season with Roman salt the barbarisms of his native tongue!" He affects great

contempt for Ethelwerd, whose work will be considered hereafter; and he well knew how unacceptable any

praise of the "Saxon Annals" would be to the Normans, with whom he was connected (18). He thinks it

necessary to give his reasons, on one occasion, for inserting from these very "Annals" what he did not find in

Bede; though it is obvious, that the best part of his materials, almost to his own times, is derived from the

same source.

The object of Bishop Asser, the biographer of Alfred, who comes next in order, was to deliver to posterity a

complete memorial of that sovereign, and of the transactions of his reign. To him alone are we indebted for

the detail of many interesting circumstances in the life and character of his royal patron (19); but most of the

public transactions will be found in the pages of the "Saxon Chronicle": some passages of which he appears

to have translated so literally, that the modern version of Gibson does not more closely represent the original.

In the editions of Parker, Camden, and Wise, the last notice of any public event refers to the year 887. The

interpolated copy of Gale, called by some PseudoAsserius, and by others the Chronicle of St. Neot's, is

extended to the year 914 (20). Much difference of opinion exists respecting this work; into the discussion of

which it is not our present purpose to enter. One thing is remarkable: it contains the vision of Drihtelm,

copied from Bede, and that of Charles King of the Franks, which Malmsbury thought it worth while to repeat

in his "History of the Kings of England". What Gale observes concerning the "fidelity" with which these

annals of Asser are copied by Marianus, is easily explained. They both translated from the "Saxon

Chronicle", as did also Florence of Worcester, who interpolated Marianus; of whom we shall speak hereafter.

But the most faithful and extraordinary follower of the "Saxon Annals" is Ethelwerd; who seems to have

disregarded almost all other sources of information. One great error, however, he committed; for which

Malmsbury does nor spare him. Despairing of the reputation of classical learning, if he had followed the

simplicity of the Saxon original, he fell into a sort of measured and inverted prose, peculiar to himself; which,

being at first sufficiently obscure, is sometimes rendered almost unintelligible by the incorrect manner in

which it has been printed. His authority, nevertheless, in an historical point of view, is very respectable.

Being one of the few writers untainted by monastic prejudice (21), he does not travel out of his way to

indulge in legendary tales and romantic visions. Critically considered, his work is the best commentary on the

"Saxon Chronicle" to the year 977; at which period one of the MSS. which he seems to have followed,

terminates. Brevity and compression seem to have been his aim, because the compilation was intended to be

sent abroad for the instruction of a female relative of high rank in Germany (22), at her request. But there are,

nevertheless, some circumstances recorded which are not to be found elsewhere; so that a reference to this

epitome of Saxon history will be sometimes useful in illustrating the early part of the "Chronicle"; though

Gibson, I know not on what account, has scarcely once quoted it.

During the sanguinary conflicts of the eleventh century, which ended first in the temporary triumph of the

Danes, and afterwards in the total subjugation of the country by the Normans, literary pursuits, as might be

expected, were so much neglected, that scarcely a Latin writer is to be found: but the "Saxon Chronicle" has

preserved a regular and minute detail of occurrences, as they passed along, of which subsequent historians

were glad to avail themselves. For nearly a century after the Conquest, the Saxon annalists appear to have

been chiefly eyewitnesses of the transactions which they relate (23). The policy of the Conqueror led him by

degrees to employ Saxons as well as Normans: and William II. found them the most faithful of his subjects:

but such an influx of foreigners naturally corrupted the ancient language; till at length, after many foreign and

domestic wars, tranquillity being restored on the accession of Henry II., literature revived; a taste for

composition increased; and the compilation of Latin histories of English and foreign affairs, blended and


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

ORIGINAL INTRODUCTION TO INGRAM'S EDITION [1823] 4



Top




Page No 7


diversified with the fabled romance and legendary tale, became the ordinary path to distinction. It is

remarkable, that when the "Saxon Chronicle" ends, Geoffrey of Monmouth begins. Almost every great

monastery about this time had its historian: but some still adhered to the ancient method. Florence of

Worcester, an interpolator of Marianus, as we before observed, closely follows Bede, Asser, and the "Saxon

Chronicle" (24). The same may be observed of the annals of Gisburne, of Margan, of Meiros, of Waverley,

etc.; some of which are anonymous compilations, whilst others have the name of an author, or rather

transcriber; for very few aspired to the character of authors or original historians. Thomas Wikes, a canon of

Oseney, who compiled a Latin chronicle of English affairs from the Conquest to the year 1304, tells us

expressly, that he did this, not because he could add much to the histories of Bede, William of Newburgh, and

Matthew Paris, but "propter minores, quibus non suppetit copia librorum." (25) Before the invention of

printing, it was necessary that numerous copies of historical works should be transcribed, for the instruction

of those who had not access to libraries. The transcribers frequently added something of their own, and

abridged or omitted what they thought less interesting. Hence the endless variety of interpolators and

deflorators of English history. William of Malmsbury, indeed, deserves to be selected from all his

competitors for the superiority of his genius; but he is occasionally inaccurate, and negligent of dates and

other minor circumstances; insomuch that his modern translator has corrected some mistakes, and supplied

the deficiencies in his chronology, by a reference to the "Saxon Chronicle". Henry of Huntingdon, when he is

not transcribing Bede, or translating the "Saxon Annals", may be placed on the same shelf with Geoffrey of

Monmouth.

As I have now brought the reader to the period when our "Chronicle" terminates, I shall dismiss without

much ceremony the succeeding writers, who have partly borrowed from this source; Simon of Durham, who

transcribes Florence of Worcester, the two priors of Hexham, Gervase, Hoveden, Bromton, Stubbes, the two

Matthews, of Paris and Westminster, and many others, considering that sufficient has been said to convince

those who may not have leisure or opportunity to examine the matter themselves, that however numerous are

the Latin historians of English affairs, almost everything original and authentic, and essentially conducive to

a correct knowledge of our general history, to the period above mentioned, may be traced to the "Saxon

Annals".

It is now time to examine, who were probably the writers of these "Annals". I say probably, because we have

very little more than rational conjecture to guide us.

The period antecedent to the times of Bede, except where passages were afterwards inserted, was perhaps

little else, originally, than a kind of chronological table of events, with a few genealogies, and notices of the

death and succession of kings and other distinguished personages. But it is evident from the preface of Bede

and from many passages in his work, that he received considerable assistance from Saxon bishops, abbots,

and others; who not only communicated certain traditionary facts "viva voce", but also transmitted to him

many written documents. These, therefore, must have been the early chronicles of Wessex, of Kent, and of

the other provinces of the Heptarchy; which formed together the groundwork of his history. With greater

honesty than most of his followers, he has given us the names of those learned persons who assisted him with

this local information. The first is Alcuinus or Albinus, an abbot of Canterbury, at whose instigation he

undertook the work; who sent by Nothelm, afterwards archbishop of that province, a full account of all

ecclesiastical transactions in Kent, and in the contiguous districts, from the first conversion of the Saxons.

From the same source he partly derived his information respecting the provinces of Essex, Wessex, East

Anglia, and Northumbria. Bishop Daniel communicated to him by letter many particulars concerning

Wessex, Sussex, and the Isle of Wight. He acknowledges assistance more than once "ex scriptis priorum";

and there is every reason to believe that some of these preceding records were the "AngloSaxon Annals";

for we have already seen that such records were in existence before the age of Nennius. In proof of this we

may observe, that even the phraseology sometimes partakes more of the Saxon idiom than the Latin. If,

therefore, it be admitted, as there is every reason to conclude from the foregoing remarks, that certain

succinct and chronological arrangements of historical facts had taken place in several provinces of the


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

ORIGINAL INTRODUCTION TO INGRAM'S EDITION [1823] 5



Top




Page No 8


Heptarchy before the time of Bede, let us inquire by whom they were likely to have been made.

In the province of Kent, the first person on record, who is celebrated for his learning, is Tobias, the ninth

bishop of Rochester, who succeeded to that see in 693. He is noticed by Bede as not only furnished with an

ample store of Greek and Latin literature, but skilled also in the Saxon language and erudition (26). It is

probable, therefore, that he left some proofs of this attention to his native language and as he died within a

few years of Bede, the latter would naturally avail himself of his labours. It is worthy also of remark, that

Bertwald, who succeeded to the illustrious Theodore of Tarsus in 690, was the first English or Saxon

archbishop of Canterbury. From this period, consequently, we may date that cultivation of the vernacular

tongue which would lead to the composition of brief chronicles (27), and other vehicles of instruction,

necessary for the improvement of a rude and illiterate people. The first chronicles were, perhaps, those of

Kent or Wessex; which seem to have been regularly continued, at intervals. by the archbishops of Canterbury,

or by their direction (28), at least as far as the year 1001, or by even 1070; for the Benet MS., which some

call the Plegmund MS., ends in the latter year; the rest being in Latin. From internal evidence indeed, of an

indirect nature, there is great reason to presume, that Archbishop Plegmund transcribed or superintended this

very copy of the "Saxon Annals" to the year 891 (29); the year in which he came to the see; inserting, both

before and after this date, to the time of his death in 923, such additional materials as he was well qualified to

furnish from his high station and learning, and the confidential intercourse which he enjoyed in the court of

King Alfred. The total omission of his own name, except by another hand, affords indirect evidence of some

importance in support of this conjecture. Whether King Alfred himself was the author of a distinct and

separate chronicle of Wessex, cannot now be determined. That he furnished additional supplies of historical

matter to the older chronicles is, I conceive, sufficiently obvious to every reader who will take the trouble of

examining the subject. The argument of Dr. Beeke, the present Dean of Bristol, in an obliging letter to the

editor on this subject, is not without its force;  that it is extremely improbable, when we consider the

number and variety of King Alfred's works, that he should have neglected the history, of his own country.

Besides a genealogy of the kings of Wessex from Cerdic to his own time, which seems never to have been

incorporated with any MS. of the "Saxon Chronicle", though prefixed or annexed to several, he undoubtedly

preserved many traditionary facts; with a full and circumstantial detail of his own operations, as well as those

of his father, brother, and other members of his family; which scarcely any other person than himself could

have supplied. To doubt this would be as incredulous a thing as to deny that Xenophon wrote his "Anabasis",

or Caesar his "Commentaries". From the time of Alfred and Plegmund to a few years after the Norman

Conquest, these chronicles seem to have been continued by different hands, under the auspices of such men

as Archbishops Dunstan, Aelfric, and others, whose characters have been much misrepresented by ignorance

and scepticism on the one hand; as well as by mistaken zeal and devotion on the other. The indirect evidence

respecting Dunstan and Aelfric is as curious as that concerning Plegmund; but the discussion of it would lead

us into a wide and barren field of investigation; nor is this the place to refute the errors of Hickes, Cave, and

Wharton, already noticed by Wanley in his preface. The chronicles of Abingdon, of Worcester, of

Peterborough, and others, are continued in the same manner by different hands; partly, though not

exclusively, by monks of those monasteries, who very naturally inserted many particulars relating to their

own local interests and concerns; which, so far from invalidating the general history, render it more

interesting and valuable. It would be a vain and frivolous attempt ascribe these latter compilations to

particular persons (31), where there were evidently so many contributors; but that they were successively

furnished by contemporary writers, many of whom were eyewitnesses of the events and transactions which

they relate, there is abundance of internal evidence to convince us. Many instances of this the editor had

taken some pains to collect, in order to lay them before the reader in the preface; but they are so numerous

that the subject would necessarily become tedious; and therefore every reader must be left to find them for

himself. They will amply repay him for his trouble, if he takes any interest in the early history of England, or

in the general construction of authentic history of any kind. He will see plagarisms without end in the Latin

histories, and will be in no danger of falling into the errors of Gale and others; not to mention those of our

historians who were not professed antiquaries, who mistook that for original and authentic testimony which

was only translated. It is remarkable that the "Saxon Chronicle" gradually expires with the Saxon language,


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

ORIGINAL INTRODUCTION TO INGRAM'S EDITION [1823] 6



Top




Page No 9


almost melted into modern English, in the year 1154. From this period almost to the Reformation, whatever

knowledge we have of the affairs of England has been originally derived either from the semibarbarous

Latin of our own countrymen, or from the French chronicles of Froissart and others.

The revival of good taste and of good sense, and of the good old custom adopted by most nations of the

civilised world  that of writing their own history in their own language  was happily exemplified at

length in the laborious works of our English chroniclers and historians.

Many have since followed in the same track; and the importance of the whole body of English History has

attracted and employed the imagination of Milton, the philosophy of Hume, the simplicity of Goldsmith, the

industry of Henry, the research of Turner, and the patience of Lingard. The pages of these writers, however,

accurate and luminous as they generally are, as well as those of Brady, Tyrrell, Carte, Rapin, and others, not

to mention those in black letter, still require correction from the "Saxon Chronicle"; without which no person,

however learned, can possess anything beyond a superficial acquaintance with the elements of English

History, and of the British Constitution.

Some remarks may here be requisite on the CHRONOLOGY of the "Saxon Chronicle". In the early part of it

(32) the reader will observe a reference to the grand epoch of the creation of the world. So also in Ethelwerd,

who closely follows the "Saxon Annals". It is allowed by all, that considerable difficulty has occurred in

fixing the true epoch of Christ's nativity (33), because the Christian aera was not used at all till about the year

532 (34), when it was introduced by Dionysius Exiguus; whose code of canon law, joined afterwards with the

decretals of the popes, became as much the standard of authority in ecclesiastical matters as the pandects of

Justinian among civilians. But it does not appear that in the Saxon mode of computation this system of

chronology was implicitly followed. We mention this circumstance, however, not with a view of settling the

point of difference, which would not be easy, but merely to account for those variations observable m

different MSS.; which arose, not only from the common mistakes or inadvertencies of transcribers, but from

the liberty which the original writers themselves sometimes assumed in this country, of computing the current

year according to their own ephemeral or local custom. Some began with the Incarnation or Nativity of

Christ; some with the Circumcision, which accords with the solar year of the Romans as now restored; whilst

others commenced with the Annunciation; a custom which became very prevalent in honour of the Virgin

Mary, and was not formally abolished here till the year 1752; when the Gregorian calendar, commonly called

the New Style, was substituted by Act of Parliament for the Dionysian. This diversity of computation would

alone occasion some confusion; but in addition to this, the INDICTION, or cycle of fifteen years, which is

mentioned in the latter part of the "Saxon Chronicle", was carried back three years before the vulgar aera, and

commenced in different places at four different periods of the year! But it is very remarkable that, whatever

was the commencement of the year in the early part of the "Saxon Chronicle", in the latter part the year

invariably opens with Midwinterday or the Nativity. Gervase of Canterbury, whose Latin chronicle ends in

1199, the aera of "legal" memory, had formed a design, as he tells us, of regulating his chronology by the

Annunciation; but from an honest fear of falsifying dates he abandoned his first intention, and acquiesced in

the practice of his predecessors; who for the most part, he says, began the new year with the Nativity (35).

Having said thus much in illustration of the work itself, we must necessarily be brief in our account of the

present edition. It was contemplated many years since, amidst a constant succession of other occupations; but

nothing was then projected beyond a reprint of Gibson, substituting an English translation for the Latin. The

indulgence of the Saxon scholar is therefore requested, if we have in the early part of the chronicle too

faithfully followed the received text. By some readers no apology of this kind will be deemed necessary; but

something may be expected in extenuation of the delay which has retarded the publication. The causes of that

delay must be chiefly sought in the nature of the work itself. New types were to be cast; compositors to be

instructed in a department entirely new to them; manuscripts to be compared, collated, transcribed; the text to

be revised throughout; various readings of great intricacy to be carefully presented, with considerable

additions from unpublished sources; for, however unimportant some may at first sight appear, the most trivial


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

ORIGINAL INTRODUCTION TO INGRAM'S EDITION [1823] 7



Top




Page No 10


may be of use. With such and other difficulties before him, the editor has, nevertheless, been blessed with

health and leisure sufficient to overcome them; and he may now say with Gervase the monk at the end of his

first chronicle,

     "Finito libro reddatur gratia Christo." (36)

Of the translation it is enough to observe, that it is made as literal as possible, with a view of rendering the

original easy to those who are at present unacquainted with the Saxon language. By this method also the

connection between the ancient and modern language will be more obvious. The same method has been

adopted in an unpublished translation of Gibson's "Chronicle" by the late Mr. Cough, now in the Bodleian

Library. But the honour of having printed the first literal version of the "Saxon Annals" was reserved for a

learned LADY, the Elstob of her age (37); whose Work was finished in the year 1819. These translations,

however, do not interfere with that in the present edition; because they contain nothing but what is found in

the printed texts, and are neither accompanied with the original, nor with any collation of MSS.

ENDNOTES:

(1)  Whatever was the origin of this title, by which it is now

     distinguished, in an appendix to the work itself it is

     called "Liber de Wintonia," or "The WinchesterBook," from

     its first place of custody.

(2)  This title is retained, in compliance with custom, though it

     is a collection of chronicles, rather than one uniform work,

     as the received appellation seems to imply.

(3)  In two volumes folio, with the following title: "Domesday

     Book, seu Liber Censualis Willelmi Primi Regis Angliae,

     inter Archlyos Regni in Domo Capitulari Westmonasterii

     asservatus: jubente rege augustissimo Georgio Tertio praelo

     mandatus typis MDCCLXXXIII"

(4)  Gerard Langbaine had projected such a work, and had made

     considerable progress in the collation of MSS., when he

     found himself anticipated by Wheloc.

(5)  "Nunc primum integrum edidit" is Gibson's expression in the

     titlepage.  He considers Wheloc's MSS. as fragments, rather

     than entire chronicles: "quod integrum nacti jam discimus."

     These MSS., however, were of the first authority, and not

     less entire, as far as they went, than his own favourite

     "Laud".  But the candid critic will make allowance for the

     zeal of a young Bachelor of Queen's, who, it must be

     remembered, had scarcely attained the age of twentythree

     when this extraordinary work was produced.

(6)  The reader is forcibly reminded of the national dress of the

     Highlanders in the following singular passage: "furciferos

     magis vultus pilis, quam corporum pudenda, pudendisque

     proxima, vestibus tegentes."

(7)  See particularly capp. xxiii. and xxvi.  The work which

     follows, called the "Epistle of Gildas", is little more than

     a cento of quotations from the Old and New Testament.

(8)  "De historiis Scotorum Saxonumque, licet inimicorum," etc.

     "Hist. Brit. ap." Gale, XV. Script. p. 93.  See also p. 94

     of the same work; where the writer notices the absence of

     all written memorials among the Britons, and attributes it

     to the frequent recurrence of war and pestilence.  A new

     edition has been prepared from a Vatican MS. with a

     translation and notes by the Rev. W. Gunn, and published by

     J. and A. Arch.

(9)  "Malo me historiographum quam neminem," etc.

(10) He considered his work, perhaps, as a lamentation of

     declamation, rather than a history.  But Bede dignifies him

     with the title of "historicus," though he writes "fiebili


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

ORIGINAL INTRODUCTION TO INGRAM'S EDITION [1823] 8



Top




Page No 11


sermone."

(11) But it is probable that the work is come down to us in a

     garbled and imperfect state.

(12) There is an absurd story of a monk, who in vain attempting

     to write his epitaph, fell asleep, leaving it thus: "Hac

     sunt in fossa Bedae. ossa:" but, when he awoke, to his great

     surprise and satisfaction he found the longsought epithet

     supplied by an angelic hand, the whole line standing thus:

     "Hac sunt in fossa Bedae venerabilis ossa."

(13) See the preface to his edition of the "Saxon Chronicle".

(14) This will be proved more fully when we come to speak of the

     writers of the "Saxon Chronicle".

(15) Preface, "ubi supra".

(16) He died A.D. 734, according to our chronicle; but some place

     his death to the following year.

(17) This circumstance alone proves the value of the "Saxon

     Chronicle". In the "Edinburgh Chronicle" of St. Cross,

     printed by H. Wharton, there is a chasm from the death of

     Bede to the year 1065; a period of 330 years.

(18) The cold and reluctant manner in which he mentions the

     "Saxon Annals", to which he was so much indebted, can only

     be ascribed to this cause in him, as well as in the other

     Latin historians.  See his prologue to the first book, "De

     Gestis Regum," etc.

(19) If there are additional anecdotes in the Chronicle of St.

     Neot's, which is supposed to have been so called by Leland

     because he found the MS. there, it must be remembered that

     this work is considered an interpolated Asser.

(20) The death of Asser himself is recorded in the year 909; but

     this is no more a proof that the whole work is spurious,

     than the character and burial of Moses, described in the

     latter part of the book of "Deuteronomy", would go to prove

     that the Pentateuch was not written by him.  See Bishop

     Watson's "Apology for the Bible".

(21) Malmsbury calls him "noble and magnificent," with reference

     to his rank; for he was descended from King Alfred: but he

     forgets his peculiar praise  that of being the only Latin

     historian for two centuries; though, like Xenophon, Caesar,

     and Alfred, he wielded the sword as much as the pen.

(22) This was no less a personage than Matilda, the daughter of

     Otho the Great, Emperor of Germany, by his first Empress

     Eadgitha or Editha; who is mentioned in the "Saxon

     Chronicle", A.D. 925, though not by name, as given to Otho

     by her brother, King Athelstan. Ethelwerd adds, in his

     epistle to Matilda, that Athelstan sent two sisters, in

     order that the emperor might take his choice; and that he

     preferred the mother of Matilda.

(23) See particularly the character of William I. p. 294, written

     by one who was in his court.  The compiler of the "Waverley

     Annals" we find literally translating it more than a century

     afterwards:  "nos dicemus, qui eum vidimus, et in curia

     ejus aliquando fuimus," etc.  Gale, ii. 134.

(24) His work, which is very faithfully and diligently compiled,

     ends in the year 1117; but it is continued by another hand

     to the imprisonment of King Stephen.

(25) "Chron. ap." Gale, ii. 21.

(26) "Virum Latina, Graec, et Saxonica lingua atque eruditione

     multipliciter instructum."  Bede, "Ecclesiastical

     History", v. 8. "Chron. S. Crucis Edinb. ap.", Wharton, i.

     157.

(27) The materials, however, though not regularly arranged, must

     be traced to a much higher source.


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

ORIGINAL INTRODUCTION TO INGRAM'S EDITION [1823] 9



Top




Page No 12


(28) Josselyn collated two Kentish MSS. of the first authority;

     one of which he calls the History or Chronicle of St.

     Augustine's, the other that of Christ Church, Canterbury.

     The former was perhaps the one marked in our series "C.T."A

     VI.; the latter the Benet or Plegmund MS.

(29) Wanley observes, that the Benet MS. is written in one and

     the same hand to this year, and in hands equally ancient to

     the year 924; after which it is continued in different hands

     to the end.  Vid. "Cat." p. 130.

(30) Florence of Worcester, in ascertaining the succession of the

     kings of Wessex, refers expressly to the "Dicta Aelfredi".

     Ethelwerd had before acknowledged that he reported many

     things  "sicut docuere parentes;" and then he immediately

     adds, "Scilicet Aelfred rex Athulfi regis filius; ex quo nos

     originem trahimus." Vid. Prol.

(31) Hickes supposed the Laud or Peterborough Chronicle to have

     been compiled by Hugo Candidus (Albus, or White), or some

     other monk of that house.

(32) See A.D. xxxiii., the aera of Christ's crucifixion, p. 23,

     and the notes below.

(33) See Playfair's "System of Chronology", p. 49.

(34) Playfair says 527: but I follow Bede, Florence of Worcester,

     and others, who affirm that the great paschal cycle of

     Dionysius commenced from the year of our Lord's incarnation

     532  the year in which the code of Justinian was

     promulgated.  "Vid. Flor. an." 532, 1064, and 1073.  See

     also M. West. "an." 532.

(35) "Vid. Prol. in Chron." Bervas. "ap. X." Script. p. 1338.

(36) Often did the editor, during the progress of the work,

     sympathise with the printer; who, in answer to his urgent

     importunities to hasten the work, replied once in the

     classical language of Manutius: "Precor, ut occupationibus

     meis ignoscas; premor enim oneribus, et typographiae cura,

     ut vix sustineam."  Who could be angry after this?

(37) Miss Gurney, of Keswick, Norfolk.  The work, however, was

     not published.

THE ANGLOSAXON CHRONICLE

Part I

The island Britain (1) is 800 miles long, and 200 miles broad. And there are in the island five nations;

English, Welsh (or British) (2), Scottish, Pictish, and Latin. The first inhabitants were the Britons, who came

from Armenia (3), and first peopled Britain southward. Then happened it, that the Picts came south from

Scythia, with long ships, not many; and, landing first in the northern part of Ireland, they told the Scots that

they must dwell there. But they would not give them leave; for the Scots told them that they could not all

dwell there together; "But," said the Scots, "we can nevertheless give you advice. We know another island

here to the east. There you may dwell, if you will; and whosoever withstandeth you, we will assist you, that

you may gain it." Then went the Picts and entered this land northward. Southward the Britons possessed it, as

we before said. And the Picts obtained wives of the Scots, on condition that they chose their kings always on

the female side (4); which they have continued to do, so long since. And it happened, in the run of years, that

some party of Scots went from Ireland into Britain, and acquired some portion of this land. Their leader was

called Reoda (5), from whom they are named Dalreodi (or Dalreathians).

Sixty winters ere that Christ was born, Caius Julius, emperor of the Romans, with eighty ships sought Britain.

There he was first beaten in a dreadful fight, and lost a great part of his army. Then he let his army abide with

the Scots (6), and went south into Gaul. There he gathered six hundred ships, with which he went back into


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

THE ANGLOSAXON CHRONICLE 10



Top




Page No 13


Britain. When they first rushed together, Caesar's tribune, whose name was Labienus (7), was slain. Then

took the Welsh sharp piles, and drove them with great clubs into the water, at a certain ford of the river called

Thames. When the Romans found that, they would not go over the ford. Then fled the Britons to the

fastnesses of the woods; and Caesar, having after much fighting gained many of the chief towns, went back

into Gaul (8).

((B.C. 60. Before the incarnation of Christ sixty years, Gaius Julius the emperor, first of the Romans, sought

the land of Britain; and he crushed the Britons in battle, and overcame them; and nevertheless he was unable

to gain any empire there.))

A.D. 1. Octavianus reigned fiftysix winters; and in the forty second year of his reign Christ was born. Then

three astrologers from the east came to worship Christ; and the children in Bethlehem were slain by Herod in

persecution of Christ.

A.D. 3. This year died Herod, stabbed by his own hand; and Archelaus his son succeeded him. The child

Christ was also this year brought back again from Egypt.

A.D. 6. From the beginning of the world to this year were agone five thousand and two hundred winters.

A.D. 11. This year Herod the son of Antipater undertook the government in Judea.

A.D. 12. This year Philip and Herod divided Judea into four kingdoms.

((A.D. 12. This year Judea was divided into four tetrarchies.))

A.D. 16. This year Tiberius succeeded to the empire.

A.D. 26. This year Pilate began to reign over the Jews.

A.D. 30. This year was Christ baptized; and Peter and Andrew were converted, together with James, and

John, and Philip, and all the twelve apostles.

A.D. 33. This year was Christ crucified; (9) about five thousand two hundred and twenty six winters from the

beginning of the world. (10)

A.D. 34. This year was St. Paul converted, and St. Stephen stoned.

A.D. 35. This year the blessed Peter the apostle settled an episcopal see in the city of Antioch.

A.D. 37. This year (11) Pilate slew himself with his own hand.

A.D. 39. This year Caius undertook the empire.

A.D. 44. This year the blessed Peter the apostle settled an episcopal see at Rome; and James, the brother of

John, was slain by Herod.

A.D. 45. This year died Herod, who slew James one year ere his own death.

A.D. 46. This year Claudius, the second of the Roman emperors who invaded Britain, took the greater part of

the island into his power, and added the Orkneys to rite dominion of the Romans. This was in the fourth year

of his reign. And in the same year (12) happened the great famine in Syria which Luke mentions in the book


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

THE ANGLOSAXON CHRONICLE 11



Top




Page No 14


called "The Acts of the Apostles". After Claudius Nero succeeded to the empire, who almost lost the island

Britain through his incapacity.

((A.D. 46. This year the Emperor Claudius came to Britain, and subdued a large part of the island; and he

also added the island of Orkney to the dominion of the Romans.))

A.D. 47. This year Mark, the evangelist in Egypt beginneth to write the gospel.

((A.D. 47. This was in the fourth year of his reign, and in this same year was the great famine in Syria which

Luke speaks of in the book called "Actus Apostolorum".))

((A.D. 47. This year Claudius, king of the Romans, went with an army into Britain, and subdued the island,

and subjected all the Picts and Welsh to the rule of the Romans.))

A.D. 50. This year Paul was sent bound to Rome.

A.D. 62. This year James, the brother of Christ, suffered.

A.D. 63. This year Mark the evangelist departed this life.

A.D. 69. This year Peter and Paul suffered.

A.D. 70. This year Vespasian undertook the empire.

A.D. 71. This year Titus, son of Vespasian, slew in Jerusalem eleven hundred thousand Jews.

A.D. 81. This year Titus came to the empire, after Vespasian, who said that he considered the day lost in

which he did no good.

A.D. 83. This year Domitian, the brother of Titus, assumed the government.

A.D. 84. This year John the evangelist in the island Patmos wrote the book called "The Apocalypse".

A.D. 90. This year Simon, the apostle, a relation of Christ, was crucified: and John the evangelist rested at

Ephesus.

A.D. 92. This year died Pope Clement.

A.D. 110. This year Bishop Ignatius suffered.

A.D. 116. This year Hadrian the Caesar began to reign.

A.D. 145. This year Marcus Antoninus and Aurelius his brother succeeded to the empire.

((A.D. 167. This year Eleutherius succeeded to the popedom, and held it fifteen years; and in the same year

Lucius, king of the Britons, sent and begged baptism of him. And he soon sent it him, and they continued in

the true faith until the time of Diocletian.))

A.D. 189. This year Severus came to the empire; and went with his army into Britain, and subdued in battle a

great part of the island. Then wrought he a mound of turf, with a broad wall thereupon, from sea to sea, for

the defence of the Britons. He reigned seventeen years; and then ended his days at York. His son Bassianus


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

THE ANGLOSAXON CHRONICLE 12



Top




Page No 15


succeeded him in the empire. His other son, who perished, was called Geta. This year Eleutherius undertook

the bishopric of Rome, and held it honourably for fifteen winters. To him Lucius, king of the Britons, sent

letters, and prayed that he might be made a Christian. He obtained his request; and they continued afterwards

in the right belief until the reign of Diocletian.

A.D. 199. In this year was found the holy rood. (13)

A.D. 283. This year suffered Saint Alban the Martyr.

A.D. 343. This year died St. Nicolaus.

A.D. 379. This year Gratian succeeded to the empire.

A.D. 381. This year Maximus the Caesar came to the empire. He was born in the land of Britain, whence he

passed over into Gaul. He there slew the Emperor Gratian; and drove his brother, whose name was

Valentinian, from his country (Italy). The same Valentinian afterwards collected an army, and slew Maximus;

whereby he gained the empire. About this time arose the error of Pelagius over the world.

A.D. 418. This year the Romans collected all the hoards of gold (14) that were in Britain; and some they hid

in the earth, so that no man afterwards might find them, and some they carried away with them into Gaul.

A.D. 423. This year Theodosius the younger succeeded to the empire.

A.D. 429. This year Bishop Palladius was sent from Pope Celesrinus to the Scots, that he might establish

their faith.

A.D. 430. This year Patricius was sent from Pope Celestinus to preach baptism to the Scots.

((A.D. 430. This year Patrick was sent by Pope Celestine to preach baptism to the Scots.))

A.D. 435. This year the Goths sacked the city of Rome; and never since have the Romans reigned in Britain.

This was about eleven hundred and ten winters after it was built. They reigned altogether in Britain four

hundred and seventy winters since Gaius Julius first sought that land.

A.D. 443. This year sent the Britons over sea to Rome, and begged assistance against the Picts; but they had

none, for the Romans were at war with Atila, king of the Huns. Then sent they to the Angles, and requested

the same from the nobles of that nation.

A.D. 444. This year died St. Martin.

A.D. 448. This year John the Baptist showed his head to two monks, who came from the eastern country to

Jerusalem for the sake of prayer, in the place that whilom was the palace of Herod. (15)

A.D. 449. This year Marcian and Valentinian assumed the empire, and reigned seven winters. In their days

Hengest and Horsa, invited by Wurtgern, king of the Britons to his assistance, landed in Britain in a place that

is called Ipwinesfleet; first of all to support the Britons, but they afterwards fought against them. The king

directed them to fight against the Picts; and they did so; and obtained the victory wheresoever they came.

They then sent to the Angles, and desired them to send more assistance. They described the worthlessness of

the Britons, and the richness of the land. They then sent them greater support. Then came the men from three

powers of Germany; the Old Saxons, the Angles, and the Jutes. From the Jutes are descended the men of

Kent, the Wightwarians (that is, the tribe that now dwelleth in the Isle of Wight), and that kindred in Wessex


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

THE ANGLOSAXON CHRONICLE 13



Top




Page No 16


that men yet call the kindred of the Jutes. From the Old Saxons came the people of Essex and Sussex and

Wessex. From Anglia, which has ever since remained waste between the Jutes and the Saxons, came the East

Angles, the Middle Angles, the Mercians, and all of those north of the Humber. Their leaders were two

brothers, Hengest and Horsa; who were the sons of Wihtgils; Wihtgils was the son of Witta, Witta of Wecta,

Wecta of Woden. From this Woden arose all our royal kindred, and that of the Southumbrians also.

((A.D. 449. And in their days Vortigern invited the Angles thither, and they came to Britain in three ceols, at

the place called Wippidsfleet.))

A.D. 455. This year Hengest and Horsa fought with Wurtgern the king on the spot that is called Aylesford.

His brother Horsa being there slain, Hengest afterwards took to the kingdom with his son Esc.

A.D. 457. This year Hengest and Esc fought with the Britons on the spot that is called Crayford, and there

slew four thousand men. The Britons then forsook the land of Kent, and in great consternation fled to

London.

A.D. 465. This year Hengest and Esc fought with the Welsh, nigh Wippedfleet; and there slew twelve

leaders, all Welsh. On their side a thane was there slain, whose name was Wipped.

A.D. 473. This year Hengest and Esc fought with the Welsh, and took immense Booty. And the Welsh fled

from the English like fire.

A.D. 477. This year came Ella to Britain, with his three sons, Cymen, and Wlenking, and Cissa, in three

ships; landing at a place that is called Cymenshore. There they slew many of the Welsh; and some in flight

they drove into the wood that is called Andred'sley.

A.D. 482. This year the blessed Abbot Benedict shone in this world, by the splendour of those virtues which

the blessed Gregory records in the book of Dialogues.

A.D. 485. This year Ella fought with the Welsh nigh Mecred's Burnsted.

A.D. 488. This year Esc succeeded to the kingdom; and was king of the men of Kent twentyfour winters.

A.D. 490. This year Ella and Cissa besieged the city of Andred, and slew all that were therein; nor was one

Briten left there afterwards.

A.D. 495. This year came two leaders into Britain, Cerdic and Cynric his son, with five ships, at a place that

is called Cerdic'sore. And they fought with the Welsh the same day. Then he died, and his son Cynric

succeeded to the government, and held it six and twenty winters. Then he died; and Ceawlin, his son,

succeeded, who reigned seventeen years. Then he died; and Ceol succeeded to the government, and reigned

five years. When he died, Ceolwulf, his brother, succeeded, and reigned seventeen years. Their kin goeth to

Cerdic. Then succeeded Cynebils, Ceolwulf's brother's son, to the kingdom; and reigned one and thirty

winters. And he first of WestSaxon kings received baptism. Then succeeded Cenwall, who was the son of

Cynegils, and reigned one and thirty winters. Then held Sexburga, his queen, the government one year after

him. Then succeeded Escwine to the kingdom, whose kin goeth to Cerdic, and held it two years. Then

succeeded Centwine, the son of Cynegils, to the kingdom of the WestSaxons, and reigned nine years. Then

succeeded Ceadwall to the government, whose kin goeth to Cerdic, and held it three years. Then succeeded

Ina to the kingdom of the WestSaxons, whose kin goeth to Cerdic, and reigned thirtyseven winters. Then

succeeded Ethelheard, whose kin goeth to Cerdic, and reigned sixteen years. Then succeeded Cuthred, whose

kin goeth to Cerdic, and reigned sixteen winters. Then succeeded Sigebriht, whose kin goeth to Cerdic, and

reigned one year. Then succeeded Cynwulf, whose kin goeth to Cerdic, and reigned one and thirty winters.


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

THE ANGLOSAXON CHRONICLE 14



Top




Page No 17


Then succeeded Brihtric, whose kin goeth to Cerdic, and reigned sixteen years. Then succeeded Egbert to the

kingdom, and held it seven and thirty winters, and seven months. Then succeeded Ethelwulf, his son, and

reigned eighteen years and a half. Ethelwulf was the son of Egbert, Egbert of Ealmund, Ealmund of Eafa,

Eafa of Eoppa, Eoppa of Ingild, Ingild of Cenred (Ina of Cenred, Cuthburga of Cenred, and Cwenburga of

Cenred), Cenred of Ceolwald, Ceolwald of Cuthwulf, Cuthwulf of Cuthwine, Cuthwine of Celm, Celm of

Cynric, Cynric of Creoda, Creoda of Cerdic. Then succeeded Ethelbald, the son of Ethelwulf, to the kingdom,

and held it five years. Then succeeded Ethelbert, his brother, and reigned five years. Then succeeded

Ethelred, his brother, to the kingdom, and held it five years. Then succeeded Alfred, their brother, to the

government. And then had elapsed of his age three and twenty winters, and three hundred and ninetysix

winters from the time when his kindred first gained the land of Wessex from the Welsh. And he held the

kingdom a year and a half less than thirty winters. Then succeeded Edward, the son of Alfred, and reigned

twentyfour winters. When he died, then succeeded Athelstan, his son, and reigned fourteen years and seven

weeks and three days. Then succeeded Edmund, his brother, and reigned six years and a half, wanting two

nights. Then succeeded Edred, his brother, and reigned nine years and six weeks. Then succeeded Edwy, the

son of Edmund, and reigned three years and thirtysix weeks, wanting two days. When he died, then

succeeded Edgar, his brother, and reigned sixteen years and eight weeks and two nights. When he died, then

succeeded Edward, the son of Edgar, and reigned 

A.D. 501. This year Porta and his two sons, Beda and Mela, came into Britain, with two ships, at a place

called Portsmouth. They soon landed, and slew on the spot a young Briton of very high rank.

A.D. 508. This year Cerdic and Cynric slew a British king, whose name was Natanleod, and five thousand

men with him. After this was the land named Netley, from him, as far as Charford.

A.D. 509. This year St. Benedict, the abbot, father of all the monks, (16) ascended to heaven.

A.D. 514. This year came the WestSaxons into Britain, with three ships, at the place that is called

Cerdic'sore. And Stuff and Wihtgar fought with the Britons, and put them to flight.

A.D. 519. This year Cerdic and Cynric undertook the government of the WestSaxons; the same year they

fought with the Britons at a place now called Charford. From that day have reigned the children of the

WestSaxon kings.

A.D. 527. This year Cerdic and Cynric fought with the Britons in the place that is called Cerdic'sley.

A.D. 530. This year Cerdic and Cynric took the isle of Wight, and slew many men in Carisbrook.

A.D. 534. This year died Cerdic, the first king of the West Saxons. Cynric his son succeeded to the

government, and reigned afterwards twentysix winters. And they gave to their two nephews, Stuff and

Wihtgar, the whole of the Isle of Wight.

A.D. 538. This year the sun was eclipsed, fourteen days before the calends of March, from before morning

until nine.

A.D. 540. This year the sun was eclipsed on the twelfth day before the calends of July; and the stars showed

themselves full nigh half an hour over nine.

A.D. 544. This year died Wihtgar; and men buried him at Carisbrook.

A.D. 547. This year Ida began his reign; from whom first arose the royal kindred of the Northumbrians. Ida

was the son of Eoppa, Eoppa of Esa, Esa of Ingwy, Ingwy of Angenwit, Angenwit of Alloc, Alloc of Bennoc,


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

THE ANGLOSAXON CHRONICLE 15



Top




Page No 18


Bennoc of Brand, Brand of Balday, Balday of Woden. Woden of Fritholaf, Fritholaf of Frithowulf,

Frithowulf of Finn, Finn of Godolph, Godolph of Geata. Ida reigned twelve years. He built

BamburghCastle, which was first surrounded with a hedge, and afterwards with a wall.

A.D. 552. This year Cynric fought with the Britons on the spot that is called Sarum, and put them to flight.

Cerdic was the father of Cynric, Cerdic was the son of Elesa, Elesa of Esla, Esla of Gewis, Gewis of Wye,

Wye of Frewin, Frewin of Frithgar, Frithgar of Brand, Brand of Balday, Balday of Woden. In this year

Ethelbert, the son of Ermenric, was born, who on the two and thirtieth year of his reign received the rite of

baptism, the first of all the kings in Britain.

A.D. 556. This year Cynric and Ceawlin fought with the Britons at Beranbury.

A.D. 560. This year Ceawlin undertook the government of the WestSaxons; and Ella, on the death of Ida,

that of the Northumbrians; each of whom reigned thirty winters. Ella was the son of Iff, Iff of Usfrey, Usfrey

of Wilgis, Wilgis of Westerfalcon, Westerfalcon of Seafowl, Seafowl of Sebbald, Sebbald of Sigeat, Sigeat of

Swaddy, Swaddy of Seagirt, Seagar of Waddy, Waddy of Woden, Woden of Frithowulf. This year Ethelbert

came to the kingdom of the Cantuarians, and held it fiftythree winters. In his days the holy Pope Gregory

sent us baptism. That was in the two and thirtieth year of his reign. And Columba, the masspriest, came to

the Picts, and converted them to the belief of Christ. They are the dwellers by the northern moors. And their

king gave him the island of Hii, consisting of five hides, as they say, where Columba built a monastary.

There he was abbot two and thirty winters; and there he died, when he was seventyseven years old. The

place his successors yet have. The Southern Picts were long before baptized by Bishop Ninnia, who was

taught at Rome. His church or monastery is at Hwiterne, hallowed in the name of St. Martin, where he resteth

with many holy men. Now, therefore, shall there be ever in Hii an abbot, and no bishop; and to him shall be

subject all the bishops of the Scots; because Columba was an abbot  no bishop.

((A.D. 565. This year Columba the presbyter came from the Scots among the Britons, to instruct the Picts,

and he built a monastery in the island of Hii.))

A.D. 568. This year Ceawlin, and Cutha the brother of Ceawlin, fought with Ethelbert, and pursued him into

Kent. And they slew two aldermen at Wimbledon, Oslake and Cnebba.

A.D. 571. This year Cuthulf fought with the Britons at Bedford, and took four towns, Lenbury, Aylesbury,

Benson, and Ensham. And this same year he died.

A.D. 577. This year Cuthwin and Ceawlin fought with the Britons, and slew three kings, Commail, and

Condida, and Farinmail, on the spot that is called Derham, and took from them three cities, Gloucester,

Cirencester, and Bath.

A.D. 583. This year Mauricius succeeded to the empire of the Romans.

A.D. 584. This year Ceawlin and Cutha fought with the Britons on the spot that is called Fretherne. There

Cutha was slain. And Ceawlin took many towns, as well as immense booty and wealth. He then retreated to

his own people.

A.D. 588. This year died King Ella; and Ethelric reigned after him five years.

A.D. 591. This year there was a great slaughter of Britons at Wanborough; Ceawlin was driven from his

kingdom, and Ceolric reigned six years.

A.D. 592. This year Gregory succeeded to the papacy at Rome.


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

THE ANGLOSAXON CHRONICLE 16



Top




Page No 19


A.D. 593. This year died Ceawlin, and Cwichelm, and Cryda; and Ethelfrith succeeded to the kingdom of the

Northumbrians. He was the son of Ethelric; Ethelric of Ida.

A.D. 596. This year Pope Gregory sent Augustine to Britain with very many monks, to preach the word of

God to the English people.

A.D. 597. This year began Ceolwulf to reign over the West Saxons; and he constantly fought and

conquered, either with the Angles, or the Welsh, or the Picts, or the Scots. He was the son of Cutha, Cutha of

Cynric, Cynric of Cerdic, Cerdic of Elesa, Elesa of Gewis, Gewis of Wye, Wye of Frewin, Frewin of

Frithgar, Frithgar of Brand, Brand of Balday, and Balday of Woden. This year came Augustine and his

companions to England. (17)

A.D. 601. This year Pope Gregory sent the pall to Archbishop Augustine in Britain, with very many learned

doctors to assist him; and Bishop Paulinus converted Edwin, king of the Northumbrians, to baptism.

A.D. 603. This year Aeden, king of the Scots, fought with the Dalreathians, and with Ethelfrith, king of the

Northumbrians, at Theakstone; where he lost almost all his army. Theobald also, brother of Ethelfrith, with

his whole armament, was slain. None of the Scottish kings durst afterwards bring an army against this nation.

Hering, the son of Hussa, led the army thither.

((A.D. 603. This year Aethan, King of the Scots, fought against the Dalreods and against Ethelfrith, king of

the Northhumbrians, at Daegsanstane [Dawston?], and they slew almost all his army. There Theodbald,

Ethelfrith's brother, was slain with all his band. Since then no king of the Scots has dared to lead an army

against this nation. Hering, the son of Hussa, led the enemy thither.))

A.D. 604. This year Augustine consecrated two bishops, Mellitus and Justus. Mellitus he sent to preach

baptism to the East Saxons. Their king was called Seabert, the son of Ricola, Ethelbert's sister, whom

Ethelbert placed there as king. Ethelbert also gave Mellitus the bishopric of London; and to Justus he gave the

bishopric of Rochester, which is twentyfour miles from Canterbury.

((A.D. 604. This year Augustine consecrated two bishops, Mellitus and Justus. He sent Mellitus to preach

baptism to the EastSaxons, whose king was called Sebert, son of Ricole, the sister of Ethelbert, and whom

Ethelbert had there appointed king. And Ethelbert gave Mellitus a bishop's see in London, and to Justus he

gave Rochester, which is twentyfour miles from Canterbury.))

A.D. 606. This year died Gregory; about ten years since he sent us baptism. His father was called Gordianus,

and his mother Silvia.

A.D. 607. This year Ceolwulf fought with the SouthSaxons. And Ethelfrith led his army to Chester; where

he slew an innumerable host of the Welsh; and so was fulfilled the prophecy of Augustine, wherein he saith

"If the Welsh will not have peace with us, they shall perish at the hands of the Saxons." There were also slain

two hundred priests, (18) who came thither to pray for the army of the Welsh. Their leader was called

Brocmail, who with some fifty men escaped thence.

A.D. 611. This year Cynegils succeeded to the government in Wessex, and held it one and thirty winters.

Cynegils was the son of Ceol, Ceol of Cutha, Cutha of Cynric.

A.D. 614. This year Cynegils and Cwichelm fought at Bampton, and slew two thousand and fortysix of the

Welsh.


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

THE ANGLOSAXON CHRONICLE 17



Top




Page No 20


A.D. 616. This year died Ethelbert, king of Kent, the first of English kings that received baptism: he was the

son of Ermenric. He reigned fiftysix winters, and was succeeded by his son Eadbald. And in this same year

had elapsed from the beginning of the world five thousand six hundred and eighteen winters. This Eadbald

renounced his baptism, and lived in a heathen manner; so that he took to wife the relict of his father. Then

Laurentius, who was archbishop in Kent, meant to depart southward over sea, and abandon everything. But

there came to him in the night the apostle Peter, and severely chastised him, (19) because he would so desert

the flock of God. And he charged him to go to the king, and teach him the right belief. And he did so; and the

king returned to the right belief. In this king's days the same Laurentius, who was archbishop in Kent after

Augustine, departed this life on the second of February, and was buried near Augustine. The holy Augustine

in his lifetime invested him bishop, to the end that the church of Christ, which yet was new in England,

should at no time after his decease be without an archbishop. After him Mellitus, who was first Bishop of

London, succeeded to the archbishopric. The people of London, where Mellitus was before, were then

heathens: and within five winters of this time, during the reign of Eadbald, Mellitus died. To him succeeded

Justus, who was Bishop of Rochester, whereto he consecrated Romanus bishop.

((A.D. 616. In that time Laurentius was archbishop, and for the sorrowfulness which he had on account of the

king's unbelief he was minded to forsake this country entirely, and go over sea; but St. Peter the apostle

scourged him sorely one night, because he wished thus to forsake the flock of God, and commanded him to

teach boldly the true faith to the king; and he did so, and the king turned to the right (faith). In the days of this

same king, Eadbald, this Laurentius died. The holy Augustine, while yet in sound health, ordained him

bishop, in order that the community of Christ, which was yet new in England, should not after his decease be

at any time without an archbishop. After him Mellitus, who had been previously Bishop of London,

succeeded to the archbishopric. And within five years of the decease of Laurentius, while Eadbald still

reigned, Mellitus departed to Christ.))

A.D. 617. This year was Ethelfrith, king of the Northumbrians, slain by Redwald, king of the EastAngles;

and Edwin, the son of Ella, having succeeded to the kingdom, subdued all Britain, except the men of Kent

alone, and drove out the Ethelings, the sons of Ethelfrith, namely, Enfrid. Oswald, Oswy, Oslac, Oswood.

Oslaf, and Offa.

A.D. 624. This year died Archbishop Mellitus.

A.D. 625. This year Paulinus was invested bishop of the Northumbrians, by Archbishop Justus, on the twelfth

day before the calends of August.

((A.D. 625. This year Archbishop Justus consecrated Paulinus bishop of the Northhumbrians.))

A.D. 626. This year came Eamer from Cwichelm, king of the West Saxons, with a design to assassinate

King Edwin; but he killed Lilla his thane, and Forthere, and wounded the king. The same night a daughter

was born to Edwin, whose name was Eanfleda. Then promised the king to Paulinus, that he would devote his

daughter to God, if he would procure at the hand of God, that he might destroy his enemy, who had sent the

assassin to him. He then advanced against the WestSaxons with an army, felled on the spot five kings, and

slew many of their men. This year Eanfleda, the daughter of King Edwin, was baptized, on the holy eve of

Pentecost. And the king within twelve months was baptized, at Easter, with all his people. Easter was then on

the twelfth of April. This was done at York, where he had ordered a church to be built of timber, which was

hallowed in the name of St. Peter. There the king gave the bishopric to Paulinus; and there he afterwards

ordered a larger church to be built of stone. This year Penda began to reign; and reigned thirty winters. He

had seen fifty winters when he began to reign. Penda was the son of Wybba, Wybba of Creoda, Creoda of

Cynewald, Cynewald of Cnebba, Cnebba of Icel, Icel of Eomer, Eomer of Angelthew, Angelthew of Offa,

Offa of Wearmund, Wearmund of Whitley, Whitley of Woden.


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

THE ANGLOSAXON CHRONICLE 18



Top




Page No 21


A.D. 627. This year was King Edwin baptized at Easter, with all his people, by Paulinus, who also preached

baptism in Lindsey, where the first person who believed was a certain rich man, of the name of Bleek, with

all his people. At this time Honorius succeeded Boniface in the papacy, and sent hither to Paulinus the pall;

and Archbishop Justus having departed this life on the tenth of November, Honorius was consecrated at

Lincoln Archbishop of Canterbury by Paulinus; and Pope Honorius sent him the pall. And he sent an

injunction to the Scots, that they should return to the right celebration of Easter.

((A.D. 627. This year, at Easter, Paulinus baptized Edwin king of the Northhumbrians, with his people; and

earlier within the same year, at Pentecost, he had baptized Eanfled, daughter of the same king.))

A.D. 628. This year Cynegils and Cwichelm fought with Penda at Cirencester, and afterwards entered into a

treaty there.

A.D. 632. This year was Orpwald baptized.

A.D. 633. This year King Edwin was slain by Cadwalla and Penda, on Hatfield moor, on the fourteenth of

October. He reigned seventeen years. His son Osfrid was also slain with him. After this Cadwalla and Penda

went and ravaged all the land of the Northumbrians; which when Paulinus saw, he took Ethelburga, the relict

of Edwin, and went by ship to Kent. Eadbald and Honorius received him very honourably, and gave him the

bishopric of Rochester, where he continued to his death.

A.D. 634. This year Osric, whom Paulinus baptized, succeeded to the government of Deira. He was the son

of Elfric, the uncle of Edwin. And to Bernicia succeeded Eanfrith, son of Ethelfrith. This year also Bishop

Birinus first preached baptism to the West Saxons, under King Cynegils. The said Birinus went thither by

the command of Pope Honorius; and he was bishop there to the end of his life. Oswald also this year

succeeded to the government of the Northumbrians, and reigned nine winters. The ninth year was assigned to

him on account of the heathenism in which those lived who reigned that one year betwixt him and Edwin.

A.D. 635. This year King Cynegils was baptized by Bishop Birinus at Dorchester; and Oswald, king of the

Northumbrians, was his sponsor.

A.D. 636. This year King Cwichelm was baptized at Dorchester, and died the same year. Bishop Felix also

preached to the East Angles the belief of Christ.

A.D. 639. This year Birinus baptized King Cuthred at Dorchester, and received him as his son.

A.D. 640. This year died Eadbald, King of Kent, after a reign of twentyfive winters. He had two sons,

Ermenred and Erkenbert; and Erkenbert reigned there after his father. He overturned all the idols in the

kingdom, and first of English kings appointed a fast before Easter. His daughter was called Ercongota 

holy damsel of an illustrious sire! whose mother was Sexburga, the daughter of Anna, king of the

EastAngles. Ermenred also begat two sons, who were afterwards martyred by Thunnor.

A.D. 642. This year Oswald, king of the Northumbrians, was slain by Penda, king of the Southumbrians, at

Mirfield, on the fifth day of August; and his body was buried at Bardney. His holiness and miracles were

afterwards displayed on manifold occasions throughout this island; and his hands remain still uncorrupted at

Barnburgh. The same year in which Oswald was slain, Oswy his brother succeeded to the government of the

Northumbrians, and reigned two less than thirty years.

A.D. 643. This year Kenwal succeeded to the kingdom of the West Saxons, and held it one and thirty

winters. This Kenwal ordered the old (20) church at Winchester to be built in the name of St. Peter. He was

the son of Cynegils.


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

THE ANGLOSAXON CHRONICLE 19



Top




Page No 22


A.D. 644. This year died at Rochester, on the tenth of October, Paulinus, who was first Archbishop at York,

and afterwards at Rochester. He was bishop nineteen winters, two months, and one and twenty days. This

year the son of Oswy's uncle (Oswin), the son of Osric, assumed the government of Deira, and reigned seven

winters.

A.D. 645. This year King Kenwal was driven from his dominion by King Penda.

A.D. 646. This year King Kenwal was baptized.

A.D. 648. This year Kenwal gave his relation Cuthred three thousand hides of land by Ashdown. Cuthred was

the son of Cwichelm, Cwichelm of Cynegils.

A.D. 650. This year Egelbert, from Gaul, after Birinus the Romish bishop, obtained the bishopric of the

WestSaxons.

((A.D. 650. This year Birinus the bishop died, and Agilbert the Frenchman was ordained.))

A.D. 651. This year King Oswin was slain, on the twentieth day of August; and within twelve nights

afterwards died Bishop Aidan, on the thirtyfirst of August.

A.D. 652. This year Kenwal fought at Bradford by the Avon.

A.D. 653. This year, the MiddleAngles under alderman Peada received the right belief.

A.D. 654. This year King Anna was slain, and Botolph began to build that minster at Icanhoe. This year also

died Archbishop Honorius, on the thirtieth of September.

A.D. 655. This year Penda was slain at Wingfield, and thirty royal personages with him, some of whom were

kings. One of them was Ethelhere, brother of Anna, king of the EastAngles. The Mercians after this became

Christians. From the beginning of the world had now elapsed five thousand eight hundred and fifty winters,

when Peada, the son of Penda, assumed the government of the Mercians. In his time came together himself

and Oswy, brother of King Oswald, and said, that they would rear a minster to the glory of Christ, and the

honour of St. Peter. And they did so, and gave it the name of Medhamsted; because there is a well there,

called Meadswell. And they began the groundwall, and wrought thereon; after which they committed the

work to a monk, whose name was Saxulf. He was very much the friend of God, and him also loved all

people. He was nobly born in the world, and rich: he is now much richer with Christ. But King Peada reigned

no while; for he was betrayed by his own queen, in Eastertide. This year Ithamar, Bishop of Rochester,

consecrated Deusdedit to Canterbury, on the twentysixth day of March.

A.D. 656. This year was Peada slain; and Wulfhere, son of Penda, succeeded to the kingdom of the Mercians.

In his time waxed the abbey of Medhamsted very rich, which his brother had begun. The king loved it much,

for the love of his brother Peada, and for the love of his wedbrother Oswy, and for the love of Saxulf the

abbot. He said, therefore, that he would dignify and honour it by the counsel of his brothers, Ethelred and

Merwal; and by the counsel of his sisters, Kyneburga and Kyneswitha; and by the counsel of the archbishop,

who was called Deusdedit; and by the counsel of all his peers, learned and lewd, that in his kingdom were.

And he so did. Then sent the king after the abbot, that he should immediately come to him. And he so did.

Then said the king to the abbot: "Beloved Saxulf, I have sent after thee for the good of my soul; and I will

plainly tell thee for why. My brother Peada and my beloved friend Oswy began a minster, for the love of

Christ and St. Peter: but my brother, as Christ willed, is departed from this life; I will therefore intreat thee,

beloved friend, that they earnestly proceed on their work; and I will find thee thereto gold and silver, land and

possessions, and all that thereto behoveth." Then went the abbot home, and began to work. So he sped, as


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

THE ANGLOSAXON CHRONICLE 20



Top




Page No 23


Christ permitted him; so that in a few years was that minster ready. Then, when the king heard say that, he

was very glad; and bade men send through all the nation, after all his thanes; after the archbishop, and after

bishops: and after his earls; and after all those that loved God; that they should come to him. And he fixed the

day when men should hallow the minster. And when they were hallowing the minster, there was the king,

Wulfere, and his brother Ethelred, and his sisters, Kyneburga and Kyneswitha. And the minster was hallowed

by Archbishop Deusdedit of Canterbury; and the Bishop of Rochester, Ithamar; and the Bishop of London,

who was called Wina; and the Bishop of the Mercians, whose name was Jeruman; and Bishop Tuda. And

there was Wilfrid, priest, that after was bishop; and there were all his thanes that were in his kingdom. When

the minster was hallowed, in the name of St. Peter, and St. Paul, and St. Andrew, then stood up the king

before all his thanes, and said with a loud voice: "Thanks be to the high almighty God for this worship that

here is done; and I will this day glorify Christ and St. Peter, and I will that you all confirm my words.  I

Wulfere give today to St. Peter, and the Abbot Saxulf, and the monks of the minster, these lands, and these

waters, and meres, and fens, and weirs, and all the lands that thereabout lye, that are of my kingdom, freely,

so that no man have there any ingress, but the abbot and the monks. This is the gift. From Medhamsted to

Northborough; and so to the place that is called Foleys; and so all the fen, right to Ashdike; and from Ashdike

to the place called Fethermouth; and so in a right line ten miles long to Ugdike; and so to Ragwell; and from

Ragwell five miles to the main river that goeth to Elm and to Wisbeach; and so about three miles to

Trokenholt; and from Trokenholt right through all the fen to Derworth; that is twenty miles long; and so to

Great Cross; and from Great Cross through a clear water called Bradney; and thence six miles to Paxlade; and

so forth through all the meres and fens that lye toward Huntingdonport; and the meres and lakes

Shelfermere and Wittlesey mere, and all the others that thereabout lye; with land and with houses that are on

the east side of Shelfermere; thence all the fens to Medhamsted; from Medhamsted all to Welmsford; from

Welmsford to Clive; thence to Easton; from Easton to Stamford; from Stamford as the water runneth to the

aforesaid Northborough."  These are the lands and the fens that the king gave unto St. Peter's minster. 

Then quoth the king: "It is little  this gift  but I will that they hold it so royally and so freely, that there

be taken there from neither gild nor gable, but for the monks alone. Thus I will free this minster; that it be not

subject except to Rome alone; and hither I will that we seek St. Peter, all that to Rome cannot go." During

these words the abbot desired that he would gant him his request. And the king granted it. "I have here (said

he) some good monks that would lead their life in retirement, if they wist where. Now here is an island, that

is called Ankerig; and I will request, that we may there build a minster to the honour of St. Mary; that they

may dwell there who will lead their lives in peace and tranquillity." Then answered the king, and quoth thus:

"Beloved Saxulf, not that only which thou desirest, but all things that I know thou desirest in our Lord's

behalf, so I approve, and grant. And I bid thee, brother Ethelred, and my sisters, Kyneburga and Kyneswitha,

for the release of your souls, that you be witnesses, and that you subscribe it with your fingers. And I pray all

that come after me, be they my sons, be they my brethren, or kings that come after me, that our gift may

stand; as they would be partakers of the life everlasting, and as they would avoid everlasting punishment.

Whoso lesseneth our gift, or the gift of other good men, may the heavenly porter lessen him in the kingdom

of heaven; and whoso advanceth it, may the heavenly porter advance him in the kingdom of heaven." These

are the witnesses that were there, and that subscribed it with their fingers on the cross of Christ, and

confirmed it with their tongues. That was, first the king, Wulfere, who confirmed it first with his word, and

afterwards wrote with his finger on the cross of Christ, saying thus: "I Wulfere, king, in the presence of kings,

and of earls, and of captains, and of thanes, the witnesses of my gift, before the Archbishop Deusdedit, I

confirm it with the cross of Christ." (+)  "And I Oswy, king of the Northumbrians, the friend of this

minster, and oœ the Abbot Saxulf, commend it with the cross of Christ." (+)  "And I Sighere, king, ratify it

with the cross of Christ." (+)  "And I Sibbi, king, subscribe it with the cross of Christ." (+)  "And I

Ethelred, the king's brother, granted the same with the cross of Christ." (+)  "And we, the king's sisters,

Kyneburga and Kyneswitha, approve it."  "And I Archbishop of Canterbury, Deusdedit, ratify it." 

Then confirmed it all the others that were there with the cross of Christ (+): namely, Ithamar, Bishop of

Rochester; Wina, Bishop of London; Jeruman, Bishop of the Mercians; and Tuda, bishop; and Wilfrid, priest,

who was afterwards bishop; and Eoppa, priest, whom the king, Wulfere, sent to preach christianity in the Isle

of Wight; and Saxulf, abbot; and Immine, alderman, and Edbert, alderman, and Herefrith, alderman, and


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

THE ANGLOSAXON CHRONICLE 21



Top




Page No 24


Wilbert, alderman, and Abo, alderman; Ethelbald, Brord, Wilbert, Elmund, Frethegis. These, and many

others that were there, the king's most loyal subjects, confirmed it all. This charter was written after our

Lord's Nativity 664  the seventh year of King Wulfere  the ninth year of Archbishop Deusdedir. Then

they laid God's curse, and the curse of all saints, and all christian folks, on whosoever undid anything that

there was done. "So be it," saith all. "Amen."  When this thing was done, then sent the king to Rome to the

Pope Vitalianus that then was, and desired, that he would ratify with his writ and with his blessing, all this

aforesaid thing. And the pope then sent his writ, thus saying: "I Vitalianus, pope, grant thee, King Wulfere,

and Deusdedit, archbishop, and Abbot Saxulf, all the things that you desire. And I forbid, that any king, or

any man, have any ingress, but the abbot alone; nor shall he be Subject to any man, except the Pope of Rome

and the Archbishop of Canterbury. If any one breaketh anything of this, St. Peter with his sword destroy him.

Whosoever holdeth it, St. Peter with heaven's key undo him the kingdom of heaven."  Thus was the

minster of Medhamsted begun, that was afterwards called Peterborough. Afterwards came another

archbishop to Canterbury, who was called Theodorus; a very good man and wise; and held his synod with his

bishops and with his clerk. There was Wilfrid, bishop of the Mercians, deprived of his bishopric; and Saxulf,

abbot, was there chosen bishop; and Cuthbald, monk of the same minster, was chosen abbot. This synod was

holden after our Lord's Nativity six hundred and seventythree winters.

A.D. 658. This year Kenwal fought with the Welsh at Pen, and pursued them to the Parret. This battle was

fought after his return from EastAnglia, where he was three years in exile. Penda had driven him thither and

deprived him of his kingdom, because he had discarded his sister.

A.D. 660. This year Bishop Egelbert departed from Kenwal; and Wina held the bishopric three years. And

Egbert accepted the bishopric of Paris, in Gaul, by the Seine.

A.D. 661. This year, at Easter, Kenwal fought at Pontesbury; and Wulfere, the son of Penda, pursued him as

far as Ashdown. Cuthred, the son of Cwichelm, and King Kenbert, died in one year. Into the Isle of Wight

also Wulfere, the son of Penda, penetrated, and transferred the inhabitants to Ethelwald, king of the

SouthSaxons, because Wulfere adopted him in baptism. And Eoppa, a masspriest, by command of Wilfrid

and King Wulfere, was the first of men who brought baptism to the people of the Isle of Wight.

A.D. 664. This year the sun was eclipsed, on the eleventh of May; and Erkenbert, King of Kent, having died,

Egbert his son succeeded to the kingdom. Colman with his companions this year returned to his own country.

This same year there was a great plague in the island Britain, in which died Bishop Tuda, who was buried at

Wayleigh  Chad and Wilferth were consecrated  And Archbishop Deusdedit died.

A.D. 667. This year Oswy and Egbert sent Wighard, a priest, to Rome, that he might be consecrated there

Archbishop of Canterbury; but he died as soon as he came thither.

((A.D. 667. This year Wighard went to Rome, even as King Oswy, and Egbert had sent him.))

A.D. 668. This year Theodore was consecrated archbishop, and sent into Britain.

A.D. 669. This year King Egbert gave to Bass, a masspriest, Reculver  to build a minster upon.

A.D. 670. This year died Oswy, King of Northumberland, on the fifteenth day before the calends of March;

and Egferth his son reigned after him. Lothere, the nephew of Bishop Egelbert, succeeded to the bishopric

over the land of the WestSaxons, and held it seven years. He was consecrated by Archbishop Theodore.

Oswy was the son of Ethelfrith, Ethelfrith of Ethelric, Ethelric of Ida, Ida of Eoppa.

A.D. 671. This year happened that great destruction among the fowls.


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

THE ANGLOSAXON CHRONICLE 22



Top




Page No 25


A.D. 672. This year died King Cenwal; and Sexburga his queen held the government one year after him.

A.D. 673. This year died Egbert, King of Kent; and the same year there was a synod at Hertford; and St.

Etheldritha began that monastery at Ely.

A.D. 674. This year Escwin succeeded to the kingdom of Wessex. He was the son of Cenfus, Cenfus of

Cenferth, Cenferth of Cuthgils, Cuthgils of Ceolwulf, Ceolwulf of Cynric, Cynric of Cerdic.

A.D. 675. This year Wulfere, the son of Penda, and Escwin, the son of Cenfus, fought at Bedwin. The same

year died Wulfere, and Ethelred succeeded to the government. In his time sent he to Rome Bishop Wilfrid to

the pope that then was, called Agatho, and told him by word and by letter, how his brothers Peada and

Wulfere, and the Abbot Saxulf, had wrought a minster, called Medhamsted; and that they had freed it, against

king and against bishop, from every service; and he besought him that he would confirm it with his writ and

with his blessing. And the pope sent then his writ to England, thus saying: "I Agatho, Pope of Rome, greet

well the worthy Ethelred, king of the Mercians, and the Archbishop Theodorus of Canterbury, and Saxulf, the

bishop of the Mercians, who before was abbot, and all the abbots that are in England; God's greeting and my

blessing. I have heard the petition of King Ethelred, and of the Archbishop Theodorus, and of the Bishop

Saxulf, and of the Abbot Cuthbald; and I will it, that it in all wise be as you have spoken it. And I ordain, in

behalf of God, and of St. Peter, and of all saints, and of every hooded head, that neither king, nor bishop, nor

earl, nor any man whatever, have any claim, or gable, or gild, or levy, or take any service of any kind, from

the abbey of Medhamsted. I command also, that no shirebishop be so bold as to hold an ordination or

consecration within this abbacy, except the abbot intreat him, nor have there any claim to proxies, or

synodals, or anything whatever of any kind. And I will, that the abbot be holden for legate of Rome over all

that island; and whatever abbot is there chosen by the monks that he be consecrated by the Archbishop of

Canterbury. I will and decree, that, whatever man may have made a vow to go to Rome, and cannot perform

it, either from infirmity, or for his lord's need, or from poverty, or from any other necessity of any kind

whatever, whereby he cannot come thither, be he of England, or of whatever other island he be, he may come

to that minster of Medhamsted, and have the same forgiveness of Christ and St. Peter, and of the abbot, and

of the monks, that he should have if he went to Rome. Now bid I thee, brother Theodorus, that thou let it be

proclaimed through all England, that a synod be gathered, and this writ be read and observed. Also I tell thee,

Bishop Saxulf, that, as thou desirest it, that the minster be free, so I forbid thee, and all the bishops that after

thee come, from Christ and from all his saints, that ye have no demand from that minster, except so much as

the abbot will. Now will I say in a word, that, whoso holdeth this writ and this decree, then be he ever

dwelling with God Almighty in the kingdom of heaven. And whoso breaketh it, then be he excommunicated,

and thrust down with Judas, and with all the devils in hell, except he come to repentance. Amen!" This writ

sent the Pope Agatho, and a hundred and twentyfive bishops, by Wilfrid, Archbishop of York, to England.

This was done after our Lord's Nativity 680, the sixth year of King Ethelred. Then the king commanded the

Archbishop Theodorus, that he should appoint a general Wittenmoot at the place called Hatfield. When they

were there collected, then he allowed the letter to be read that the pope sent thither; and all ratified and

confirmed it. Then said the king: "All things that my brother Peada, and my brother Wulfere, and my sisters,

Kyneburga and Kyneswitha, gave and granted to St. Peter and the abbot, these I will may stand; and I will in

my day increase it, for their souls and for my soul. Now give I St. Peter today into his minster, Medhamsted,

these lands, and all that thereto lyeth; that is, Bredon, Repings, Cadney, Swineshead, Hanbury, Lodeshall,

Scuffanhall, Cosford, Stratford, Wattleburn, Lushgard, Ethelhunisland, Bardney. These lands I give St.

Peter just as freely as I possessed them myself; and so, that none of my successors take anything therefrom.

Whoso doeth it, have he the curse of the Pope of Rome, and the curse of all bishops, and of all those that are

witnesses here. And this I confirm with the token of Christ." (+) "I Theodorus, Archbishop of Canterbury, am

witness to this charter of Medhamsted; and I ratify it with my hand, and I excommunicate all that break

anything thereof; and I bless all that hold it." (+) "I Wilfrid, Archbishop of York, am witness to this charter;

and I ratify this same curse." (+) "I Saxulf, who was first abbot, and now am bishop, I give my curse, and that

of all my successors, to those who break this."  "I Ostritha, Ethelred's queen, confirm it."  "I Adrian,


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

THE ANGLOSAXON CHRONICLE 23



Top




Page No 26


legate, ratify it."  "I Putta, Bishop of Rochester, subscribe it."  "I Waldhere, Bishop of London, confirm

it."  "I Cuthbald, abbot, ratify it; so that, whoso breaketh it, have he the cursing of all bishops and of all

christian folk. Amen."

A.D. 676. This year, in which Hedda succeeded to his bishopric, Escwin died; and Centwin obtained the

government of the West Saxons. Centwin was the son of Cynegils, Cynegils of Ceolwulf. Ethelred, king of

the Mercians, in the meantime, overran the land of Kent.

A.D. 678. This year appeared the cometstar in August, and shone every morning, during three months, like

a sunbeam. Bishop Wilfrid being driven from his bishopric by King Everth, two bishops were consecrated in

his stead, Bosa over the Deirians, and Eata over the Bernicians. About the same time also Eadhed was

consecrated bishop over the people of Lindsey, being the first in that division.

A.D. 679. This year Elwin was slain, by the river Trent, on the spot where Everth and Ethelred fought. This

year also died St. Etheldritha; and the monastery of Coldingiham was destroyed by fire from heaven.

A.D. 680. This year Archbishop Theodore appointed a synod at Hatfield; because he was desirous of

rectifying the belief of Christ; and the same year died Hilda, Abbess of Whitby.

A.D. 681. This year Trumbert was consecrated Bishop of Hexham, and Trumwin bishop of the Picts; for they

were at that time subject to this country. This year also Centwin pursued the Britons to the sea.

A.D. 684. This year Everth sent an army against the Scots, under the command of his alderman, Bright, who

lamentably plundered and burned the churches of God.

A.D. 685. This year King Everth commanded Cuthbert to be consecrated a bishop; and Archbishop Theodore,

on the first day of Easter, consecrated him at York Bishop of Hexham; for Trumbert had been deprived of

that see. The same year Everth was slain by the north sea, and a large army with him, on the thirteenth day

before the calends of June. He continued king fifteen winters; and his brother Elfrith succeeded him in the

government. Everth was the son of Oswy. Oswy of Ethelferth, Ethelferth of Ethelric, Ethelric of Ida, Ida of

Eoppa. About this time Ceadwall began to struggle for a kingdom. Ceadwall was the son of Kenbert, Kenbert

of Chad, Chad of Cutha, Cutha of Ceawlin, Ceawlin of Cynric, Cynric of Cerdic. Mull, who was afterwards

consigned to the flames in Kent, was the brother of Ceadwall. The same year died Lothhere, King of Kent;

and John was consecrated Bishop of Hexham, where he remained till Wilferth was restored, when John was

translated to York on the death of Bishop Bosa. Wilferth his priest was afterwards consecrated Bishop of

York, and John retired to his monastery (21) in the woods of Delta. This year there was in Britain a bloody

rain, and milk and butter were turned to blood.

((A.D. 685. And in this same year Cuthbert was consecrated Bishop of Hexham by Archbishop Theodore at

York, because Bishop Tumbert had been driven from the bishopric.))

A.D. 686. This year Ceadwall and his brother Mull spread devastation in Kent and the Isle of Wight. This

same Ceadwall gave to St. Peter's minster, at Medhamsted, Hook; which is situated in an island called

Egborough. Egbald at this time was abbot, who was the third after Saxulf; and Theodore was archbishop in

Kent.

A.D. 687. This year was Mull consigned to the flames in Kent, and twelve other men with him; after which,

in the same year, Ceadwall overran the kingdom of Kent.

A.D. 688. This year Ceadwall went to Rome, and received baptism at the hands of Sergius the pope, who

gave him the name of Peter; but in the course of seven nights afterwards, on the twelfth day before the


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

THE ANGLOSAXON CHRONICLE 24



Top




Page No 27


calends of May, he died in his crisomcloths, and was buried in the church of St. Peter. To him succeeded Ina

in the kingdom of Wessex, and reigned thirtyseven winters. He founded the monastery of Glastonbury; after

which he went to Rome, and continued there to the end of his life. Ina was the son of Cenred, Cenred of

Ceolwald; Ceolwald was the brother of Cynegils; and both were the sons of Cuthwin, who was the son of

Ceawlin; Ceawlin was the son of Cynric, and Cynric of Cerdic.

((A.D. 688. This year King Caedwalla went to Rome, and received baptism of Pope Sergius, and he gave him

the name of Peter, and in about seven days afterwards, on the twelfth before the kalends of May, while he

was yet in his baptismal garments, he died: and he was buried in St. Peter's church. And Ina succeeded to the

kingdom of the WestSaxons after him, and he reigned twentyseven years.))

A.D. 690. This year Archbishop Theodore, who had been bishop twentytwo winters, departed this life, (22)

and was buried within the city of Canterbury. Bertwald, who before this was abbot of Reculver, on the

calends of July succeeded him in the see; which was ere this filled by Romish bishops, but henceforth with

English. Then were there two kings in Kent, Wihtred and Webherd.

A.D. 693. This year was Bertwald consecrated archbishop by Godwin, bishop of the Gauls, on the fifth day

before the nones of July; about which time died Gifmund, who was Bishop of Rochester; and Archbishop

Bertwald consecrated Tobias in his stead. This year also Dryhtelm (23) retired from the world.

A.D. 694. This year the people of Kent covenanted with Ina, and gave him 30,000 pounds in friendship,

because they had burned his brother Mull. Wihtred, who succeeded to the kingdom of Kent, and held it

thirtythree winters, was the son of Egbert, Egbert of Erkenbert, Erkenbert of Eadbald, Eadbald of Ethelbert.

And as soon as he was king, he ordained a great council to meet in the place that is called Bapchild; in which

presided Wihtred, King of Kent, the Archbishop of Canterbury, Brihtwald, and Bishop Tobias of Rochester;

and with him were collected abbots and abbesses, and many wise men, all to consult about the advantage of

God's churches that are in Kent. Now began the king to speak, and said, "I will that all the minsters and the

churches, that were given and bequeathed to the worship of God in the days of believing kings, my

predecessors, and in the days of my relations of King Ethelbert and of those that followed him  shall so

remain to the worship of God, and stand fast for evermore. For I Wihtred, earthly king, urged on by the

heavenly king, and with the spirit of righteousness annealed, have of our progenitors learned this, that no

layman should have any right to possess himself of any church or of any of the things that belong to the

church. And, therefore, strongly and truly, we set and decree, and in the name of Almighty God, and of all

saints, we forbid all our succeeding kings, and aldermen, and all lawmen, ever, any lordship over churches,

and over all their appurtenances, which I or my elders in old days have given for a perpetual inheritance to

the glory of Christ and our Lady St. Mary, and the holy apostles. And look! when it happeneth, that bishop,

or abbot, or abbess, depart from this life, be it told the archbishop, and with his counsel and injunction be

chosen such as be worthy. And the life of him, that shall be chosen to so holy a thing, let the archbishop

examine, and his cleanness; and in no wise be chosen any one, or to so holy a thing consecrated, without the

archbishop's counsel. Kings shall appoint earls, and aldermen, sheriffs, and judges; but the archbishop shall

consult and provide for God's flock: bishops, and abbots, and abbesses, and priests, and deacons, he shall

choose and appoint; and also sanctify and confirm with good precepts and example, lest that any of God's

flock go astray and perish "

A.D. 697. This year the Southumbrians slew Ostritha, the queen of Ethelred, the sister of Everth.

A.D. 699. This year the Picts slew Alderman Burt.

A.D. 702. This year Kenred assumed the government of the Southumbrians.

A.D. 703. This year died Bishop Hedda, having held the see of Winchester twentyseven winters.


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

THE ANGLOSAXON CHRONICLE 25



Top




Page No 28


A.D. 704. This year Ethelred, the son of Penda, King of Mercia, entered into a monastic life, having reigned

twentynine winters; and Cenred succeeded to the government.

A.D. 705. This year died Ealdferth, king of the Northumbrians, on the nineteenth day before the calends of

January, at Driffield; and was succeeded by his son Osred. Bishop Saxulf also died the same year.

A.D. 709. This year died Aldhelm, who was bishop by Westwood. The land of the WestSaxons was divided

into two bishoprics in the first days of Bishop Daniel; who held one whilst Aldhelm held the other. Before

this it was only one. Forthere succeeded to Aldhelm; and Ceolred succeeded to the kingdom of Mercia. And

Cenred went to Rome; and Offa with him. And Cenred was there to the end of his life. The same year died

Bishop Wilferth, at Oundle, but his body was carried to Ripon. He was the bishop whom King Everth

compelled to go to Rome.

A.D. 710. This year Acca, priest of Wilferth, succeeded to the bishopric that Wilferth ere held; and Alderman

Bertfrith fought with the Picts between Heugh and Carau. Ina also, and Nun his relative, fought with Grant,

king of the Welsh; and the same year Hibbald was slain.

A.D. 714. This year died Guthlac the holy, and King Pepin.

A.D. 715. This year Ina and Ceolred fought at Wanborough; (24) and King Dagobert departed this life.

A.D. 716. This year Osred, king of the Northumbrians, was slain near the southern borders. He reigned

eleven winters after Ealdferth. Cenred then succeeded to the government, and held it two years; then Osric,

who held it eleven years. This same year died Ceolred, king of the Mercians. His body lies at Lichfield; but

that of Ethelred, the son of Penda, at Bardney. Ethelbald then succeeded to the kingdom of Mercia, and held

it one and forty winters. Ethelbald was the son of Alwy, Alwy of Eawa, Eawa of Webba, whose genealogy is

already written. The venerable Egbert about this time converted the monks of Iona to the right faith, in the

regulation of Easter, and the ecclesiastical tonsure.

A.D. 718. This year died Ingild, the brother of Ina. Cwenburga and Cuthburga were their sisters. Cuthburga

reared the monastery of Wimburn; and, though given in marriage to Ealdferth, King of Northumberland, they

parted during their lives.

A.D. 721. This year Bishop Daniel went to Rome; and the same year Ina slew Cynewulf, the etheling. This

year also died the holy Bishop John; who was bishop thirtythree years, and eight months, and thirteen days.

His body now resteth at Beverley.

A.D. 722. This year Queen Ethelburga destroyed Taunton, which Ina had formerly built; Ealdbert wandered a

wretched exile in Surrey and Sussex; and Ina fought with the SouthSaxons.

A.D. 725. This year died Wihtred, King of Kent, on the ninth day before the calends of May, after a reign of

thirtytwo winters. His pedigree is above; and he was succeeded by Eadbert. Ina this year also fought with

the SouthSaxons, and slew Ealdbert, the etheling, whom he had before driven into exile.

A.D. 727. This year died Tobias, Bishop of Rochester: and Archbishop Bertwald consecrated Aldulf bishop

in his stead.

A.D. 728. This year (25) Ina went to Rome, and there gave up the ghost. He was succeeded in the kingdom of

Wessex by Ethelhard his relative, who held it fourteen years; but he fought this same year with Oswald the

etheling. Oswald was the son of Ethelbald, Ethelbald of Cynebald, Cynebald of Cuthwin, Cuthwin of

Ceawlin.


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

THE ANGLOSAXON CHRONICLE 26



Top




Page No 29


A.D. 729. This year appeared the cometstar, and St. Egbert died in Iona. This year also died the etheling

Oswald; and Osric was slain, who was eleven winters king of Northumberland; to which kingdom Ceolwulf

succeeded, and held it eight years. The said Ceolwulf was the son of Cutha, Cutha of Cuthwin, Cuthwin of

Leodwald, Leodwald of Egwald, Egwald of Ealdhelm, Ealdhelm of Occa, Occa of Ida, Ida of Eoppa.

Archbishop Bertwald died this year on the ides of January. He was bishop thirtyseven winters, and six

months, and fourteen days. The same year Tatwine, who was before a priest at Bredon in Mercia, was

consecrated archbishop by Daniel Bishop of Winchester, Ingwald Bishop of London, Aldwin Bishop of

Lichfield, and Aldulf Bishop of Rochester, on the tenth day of June. He enjoyed the archbishopric about three

years.

((A.D. 729. And the same year Osric died; he was king eleven years; then Ceolwulf succeeded to the

kingdom, and held it eight years.))

A.D. 733. This year Ethelbald took Somerton; the sun was eclipsed; and Acca was driven from his bishopric.

A.D. 734. This year was the moon as if covered with blood; and Archbishop Tatwine and Bede departed this

life; and Egbert was consecrated bishop.

A.D. 735. This year Bishop Egbert received the pall at Rome.

A.D. 736. This year Archbishop Nothelm received the pall from the bishop of the Romans.

A.D. 737. This year Bishop Forthere and Queen Frithogitha went to Rome; and King Ceolwulf received the

clerical tonsure, giving his kingdom to Edbert, his uncle's son: who reigned one and twenty winters. Bishop

Ethelwold and Acca died this year, and Cynewulf was consecrated bishop. The same year also Ethelbald

ravaged the land of the Northumbrians.

A.D. 738. This year Eadbery, the son of Eata the son of Leodwald, succeeded to the Northumbrian kingdom,

and held it one and twenty winters. Archbishop Egbert, the son of Eata, was his brother. They both rest under

one porch in the city of York.

A.D. 740. This year died King Ethelhard; and Cuthred, his relative, succeeded to the WestSaxon kingdom,

which he held fourteen winters, during which time he fought many hard battles with Ethelbald, king of the

Mercians. On the death of Archbishop Nothelm, Cuthbert was consecrated archbishop, and Dunn, Bishop of

Rochester. This year York was on fire.

A.D. 742. This year there was a large synod assembled at Cliff'sHoo; and there was Ethelbald, king of

Mercia, with Archbishop Cuthbert, and many other wise men.

A.D. 743. This year Ethelbald, king of Mercia, and Cuthred, king of the WestSaxons, fought with the

Welsh.

A.D. 744. This year Daniel resigned the see of Winchester; to which Hunferth was promoted. The stars went

swiftly shooting; and Wilferth the younger, who had been thirty winters Bishop of York, died on the third day

before the calends of May.

A.D. 745. This year died Daniel. Fortythree winters had then elapsed since he received the episcopal

function.

A.D. 746. This year was King Selred slain.


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

THE ANGLOSAXON CHRONICLE 27



Top




Page No 30


A.D. 748. This year was slain Cynric, etheling of the West Saxons; Edbert, King of Kent, died; and

Ethelbert, son of King Wihtred, succeeded to the kingdom.

Part II

A.D. 750. This year Cuthred, king of the WestSaxons, fought with the proud chief Ethelhun.

A.D. 752. This year, the twelfth of his reign, Cuthred, king of the WestSaxons, fought at Burford (27) with

Ethelbald, king of the Mercians, and put him to flight.

A.D. 753. This year Cuthred, king of the WestSaxons, fought against the Welsh.

A.D. 754. This year died Cuthred, king of the WestSaxons; and Sebright, his relative, succeeded to the

kingdom, which he held one year; Cyneard succeeded Humferth in the see of Winchester; and Canterbury

was this year on fire.

A.D. 755. This year Cynewulf, with the consent of the WestSaxon council, deprived Sebright, his relative,

for unrighteous deeds, of his kingdom, except Hampshire; which he retained, until he slew the alderman who

remained the longest with him. Then Cynewulf drove him to the forest of Andred, where he remained, until a

swain stabbed him at Privett, and revenged the alderman, Cumbra. The same Cynewulf fought many hard

battles with the Welsh; and, about one and thirty winters after he had the kingdom, he was desirous of

expelling a prince called Cyneard, who was the brother of Sebright. But he having understood that the king

was gone, thinly attended, on a visit to a lady at Merton, (28) rode after him, and beset him therein;

surrounding the town without, ere the attendants of the king were aware of him. When the king found this, he

went out of doors, and defended himself with courage; till, having looked on the etheling, he rushed out upon

him, and wounded him severely. Then were they all fighting against the king, until they had slain him. As

soon as the king's thanes in the lady's bower heard the tumult, they ran to the spot, whoever was then ready.

The etheling immediately offered them life and rewards; which none of them would accept, but continued

fighting together against him, till they all lay dead, except one British hostage, and he was severely wounded.

When the king's thanes that were behind heard in the morning that the king was slain, they rode to the spot,

Osric his alderman, and Wiverth his thane, and the men that he had left behind; and they met the etheling at

the town, where the king lay slain. The gates, however, were locked against them, which they attempted to

force; but he promised them their own choice of money and land, if they would grant him the kingdom;

reminding them, that their relatives were already with him, who would never desert him. To which they

answered, that no relative could be dearer to them than their lord, and that they would never follow his

murderer. Then they besought their relatives to depart from him, safe and sound. They replied, that the same

request was made to their comrades that were formerly with the king; "And we are as regardless of the

result," they rejoined, "as our comrades who with the king were slain." Then they continued fighting at the

gates, till they rushed in, and slew the etheling and all the men that were with him; except one, who was the

godson of the alderman, and whose life he spared, though he was often wounded. This same Cynewulf

reigned one and thirty winters. His body lies at Winchester, and that of the etheling at Axminster. Their

paternal pedigree goeth in a direct line to Cerdic. The same year Ethelbald, king of the Mercians, was slain at

Seckington; and his body lies at Repton. He reigned one and forty years; and Bernred then succeeded to the

kingdom, which he held but a little while, and unprosperously; for King Offa the same year put him to flight,

and assumed the government; which he held nine and thirty winters. His son Everth held it a hundred and

forty days. Offa was the son of Thingferth, Thingferth of Enwulf, Enwulf of Osmod, Osmod of Eawa, Eawa

of Webba, Webba of Creoda, Creoda of Cenwald, Cenwald of Cnebba, Cnebba of Icel, Icel of Eomer, Eomer

of Angelthew, Angelthew of Offa, Offa of Wermund, Wermund of Witley, Witley of Woden.

((A.D. 755. This year Cynewulf deprived King Sigebert of his kingdom; and Sigebert's brother, Cynehard by

name, slew Cynewulf at Merton; and he reigned thirtyone years. And in the same year Ethelbald, king of the


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part II 28



Top




Page No 31


Mercians, was slain at Repton. And Offa succeeded to the kingdom of the Mercians, Bernred being driven

out.))

A.D. 757. This year Eadbert, king of the Northumbrians, received the tonsure, and his son Osulf the kingdom;

which he held one year. Him his own domestics slew on the ninth day before the kalends of August.

A.D. 758. This year died Archbishop Cuthbert. He held the archbishopric eighteen years.

A.D. 759. This year Bregowin was invested archbishop at Michaelmas, and continued four years. Mull

Ethelwold this year succeeded to the Northumbrian kingdom, held it six winters, and then resigned it.

A.D. 760. This year died Ethelbert, King of Kent, who was the son of King Wihtred, and also of Ceolwulf.

A.D. 761. This year was the severe winter; and Mull, king of the Northumbrians, slew Oswin at

Edwin'sCliff, on the eighth day before the ides of August.

A.D. 762. This year died Archbishop Bregowin.

A.D. 763. This year Eanbert was invested archbishop, on the fortieth day over midwinter; and Frithwald,

Bishop of Whitern, died on the nones of May. He was consecrated at York, on the eighteenth day before the

calends of September, in the sixth year of the reign of Ceolwulf, and was bishop nine and twenty winters.

Then was Petwin consecrated Bishop of Whitern at Adlingfleet, on the sixteenth day before the calends of

August.

A.D. 764. This year Archbishop Eanbert received the pall.

A.D. 765. This year Alred succeeded to the kingdom of the Northumbrians, and reigned eight winters.

A.D. 766. This year died Archbishop Egbert at York, on the thirteenth day before the calends of December,

who was bishop thirtysix winters; and Frithbert at Hexham, who was bishop there thirtyfour winters.

Ethelbert was consecrated to York, and Elmund to Hexham.

A.D. 768. This year died King Eadbert, the son of Eata, on the fourteenth day before the calends of

September.

A.D. 772. This year died Bishop Mildred.

A.D. 774. This year the Northumbrians banished their king, Alred, from York at Eastertide; and chose

Ethelred, the son of Mull, for their lord, who reigned four winters. This year also appeared in the heavens a

red crucifix, after sunset; the Mercians and the men of Kent fought at Otford; and wonderful serpents were

seen in the land of the SouthSaxons.

A.D. 775. This year Cynewulf and Offa fought near Bensington, and Offa took possession of the town. In the

days of this king, Offa, there was an abbot at Medhamsted, called Beonna; who, with the consent of all the

monks of the minster, let to farm, to Alderman Cuthbert, ten copyhold lands at Swineshead, with leasow and

with meadow, and with all the appurtenances; provided that the said Cuthbert gave the said abbot fifty

pounds therefore, and each year entertainment for one night, or thirty shillings in money; (29) provided also,

that after his decease the said lands should revert to the monastery. The king, Offa, and King Everth, and

Archbishop Hibbert, and Bishop Ceolwulf, and Bishop Inwona, and Abbot Beonna, and many other bishops,

and abbots, and rich men, were witnesses to this. In the days of this same Offa was an alderman, of the name

of Brorda, who requested the king for his sake to free his own monastery, called Woking, because he would


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part II 29



Top




Page No 32


give it to Medhamsted and St. Peter, and the abbot that then was, whose name was Pusa. Pusa succeeded

Beonna; and the king loved him much. And the king freed the monastery of Woking, against king, against

bishop, against earl, and against all men' so that no man should have any claim there, except St. Peter and the

abbot. This was done at the king's town called FreeRichburn.

A.D. 776. This year died Bishop Petwin, on the thirteenth day before the calends of October, having been

bishop fourteen winters. The same year Ethelbert was consecrated Bishop of Whitern, at York, on the

seventeenth day before the calends of July.

A.D. 778. This year Ethelbald and Herbert slew three high sheriffs  Eldulf, the son of Bosa, at Coniscliff;

Cynewulf and Eggo at Helathyrn  on the eleventh day before the calends of April. Then Elwald, having

banished Ethelred from his territory, seized on his kingdom, and reigned ten winters.

A.D. 780. This year a battle was fought between the OldSaxons and the Franks; and the highsheriffs of

Northumbria committed to the flames Alderman Bern at Silton, on the ninth day before the calends of

January. The same year Archbishop Ethelbert died at York, and Eanbald was consecrated in his stead; Bishop

Cynewulf retired to Holyisland; Elmund, Bishop of Hexham, died on the seventh day before the ides of

September, and Tilbert was consecrated in his stead, on the sixth day before the nones of October; Hibbald

was consecrated Bishop of Holyisland at Sockbury; and King Elwald sent to Rome for a pall in behoof of

Archbishop Eanbald.

A.D. 782. This year died Werburga, Queen of Ceolred, and Bishop Cynewulf, in Holyisland; and the same

year there was a synod at Acley.

A.D. 784. This year Cyneard slew King Cynewulf, and was slain himself, and eightyfour men with him.

Then Bertric undertook the government of the WestSaxons, and reigned sixteen years. His body is deposited

at Wareham; and his pedigree goeth in a direct line to Cerdic. At this time reigned Elmund king in Kent, the

father of Egbert; and Egbert was the father of Athulf.

A.D. 785. This year died Bothwin, Abbot of Ripon, and a litigious synod was holden at Chalkhythe;

Archbishop Eanbert resigned some part of his bishopric, Hibbert was appointed bishop by King Offa, and

Everth was consecrated king. In the meantime legates were sent from Rome to England by Pope Adrian, to

renew the blessings of faith and peace which St. Gregory sent us by the mission of Bishop Augustine, and

they were received with every mark of honour and respect.

A.D. 787. This year King Bertric took Edburga the daughter of Offa to wife. And in his days came first three

ships of the Northmen from the land of robbers. The reve (30) then rode thereto, and would drive them to the

king's town; for he knew not what they were; and there was he slain. These were the first ships of the Danish

men that sought the land of the English nation.

A.D. 788. This year there was a synod assembled at Fingall in Northumberland, on the fourth day before the

nones of September; and Abbot Albert departed this life.

A.D. 789. This year Elwald, king of the Northumbrians, was slain by Siga, on the eleventh day before the

calends of October; and a heavenly light was often seen on the spot where he was slain. He was buried in the

church of Hexham; and Osred, the son of Alred, who was his nephew, succeeded him in the government.

This ),ear there was a synod assembled at Acley.

A.D. 790. This year Archbishop Eanbert died, and Abbot Ethelherd was chosen archbishop the same year.

Osred, king of the Northumbrians, was betrayed and banished from his kingdom, and Ethelred, the son of

Ethelwald, succeeded him.


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part II 30



Top




Page No 33


A.D. 791. This year Baldulf was consecrated Bishop of Whitern, on the sixteenth day before the calends of

August, by Archbishop Eanbald and Bishop Ethelbert.

A.D. 792. This year Offa, King of Mercia, commanded that King Ethelbert should be beheaded; and Osred,

who had been king of the Northumbrians, returning home after his exile, was apprehended and slain, on the

eighteenth day before the calends of October. His body is deposited at Tinemouth. Ethelred this year, on the

third day before the calends of October, took unto himself a new wife, whose name was Elfleda.

A.D. 793. This year came dreadful forewarnings over the land of the Northumbrians, terrifying the people

most woefully: these were immense sheets of light rushing through the air, and whirlwinds, and fiery,

dragons flying across the firmament. These tremendous tokens were soon followed by a great famine: and not

long after, on the sixth day before the ides of January in the same year, the harrowing inroads of heathen men

made lamentable havoc in the church of God in Holyisland, by rapine and slaughter. Siga died on the eighth

day before the calends of March.

A.D. 794. This year died Pope Adrian; and also Offa, King of Mercia, on the fourth day before the ides of

August, after he had reigned forty winters. Ethelred, king of the Northumbrians, was slain by his own people,

on the thirteenth day before the calends of May; in consequence of which, Bishops Ceolwulf and Eadbald

retired from the land. Everth took to the government of Mercia, and died the same year. Eadbert, whose other

name was Pryn, obtained the kingdom of Kent; and Alderman Ethelherd died on the calends of August. In the

meantime, the heathen armies spread devastation among the Northumbrians, and plundered the monastery of

King Everth at the mouth of the Wear. There, however, some of their leaders were slain; and some of their

ships also were shattered to pieces by the violence of the weather; many of the crew were drowned; and

some, who escaped alive to the shore, were soon dispatched at the mouth of the river.

A.D. 795. This year was the moon eclipsed, between cockcrowing and dawn, (31) on the fifth day before

the calends of April; and Erdulf succeeded to the Northumbrian kingdom on the second before the ides of

May. He was afterwards consecrated and raised to his throne, at York, on the seventh day before the calends

of June, by Archbishop Eanbald, and Bishops Ethelbert, Hibbald, and Baldulf.

A.D. 796. This year died Archbishop Eanbald, on the fourth day before the ides of August; and his body is

deposited at York. The same year also died Bishop Ceolwulf; and another Eanbald was consecrated to the see

of the former, on the nineteenth day before the calends of September. About the same time Cynewulf, King

of Mercia, made inroads upon the inhabitants of Kent as far as the marsh; and the Mercians seized Edbert

Pryn, their king, led him bound into Mercia, and suffered men to pick out his eyes, and cut off his hands. (32)

And Ethelard, Archbishop of Canterbury, held a synod, wherein he ratified and confirmed, by command of

Pope Leo, all things concerning God's monasteries that were fixed in Witgar's days, and in other king's days,

saying thus: "I Ethelard, the humble Archbishop of Canterbury, with the unanimous concurrence of the whole

synod, and of all the congregations of all the minsters, to which in former days freedom was given by faithful

men, in God's name and by his terrible judgment do decree, as I have command from Pope Leo, that

henceforth none dare to choose them lords from lewd men over God's inheritance; but, as it is in the writ that

the pope has given, or holy men have settled, our fathers and our teachers, concerning holy minsters, so they

continue untainted without any resistance. If there is any man that will not observe this decree of God, of our

pope, and of us, but overlooketh it, and holdeth it for nought, let them know, that they shall give an account

before the judgmentseat of God. And I Ethelard, archbishop, with twelve bishops, and with three and twenty

abbots, this same with the roodtoken of Christ confirm and fasten."

((A.D. 796. This year Offa, king of the Mercians, died on the fourth before the kalends of August; he reigned

forty years.))


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part II 31



Top




Page No 34


A.D. 797. This year the Romans cut out the tongue of Pope Leo, put out his eyes, and drove him from his see;

but soon after, by the assistance of God, he could see and speak, and became pope as he was before. Eanbald

also received the pall on the sixth day before the ides of September, and Bishop Ethelherd died on the third

before the calends of November.

A.D. 798. This year a severe battle was fought in the Northumbrian territory, during Lent, on the fourth day

before the nones of April, at Whalley; wherein Alric, the son of Herbert, was slain, and many others with

him.

A.D. 799. This year Archbishop Ethelbert, and Cynbert, Bishop of Wessex, went to Rome. In the meantime

Bishop Alfun died at Sudbury, and was buried at Dunwich. After him Tidfrith was elected to the see; and

Siric, king of the East Saxons, went to Rome. In this year the body of Witburga was found entire, and free

from decay, at Dercham, after a lapse of five and fifty years from the period of her decease.

A.D. 800. This year was the moon eclipsed, at eight in the evening, on the seventeenth day before the calends

of February; and soon after died King Bertric and Alderman Worr. Egbert succeeded to the WestSaxon

kingdom; and the same day Ethelmund, alderman of the Wiccians, rode over the Thames at Kempsford;

where he was met by Alderman Woxtan, with the men of Wiltshire, and a terrible conflict ensued, in which

both the commanders were slain, but the men of Wiltshire obtained the victory.

((A.D. 801. This year Beornmod was ordained Bishop of Rochester.))

A.D. 802. This year was the moon eclipsed, at dawn, on the thirteenth day before the calends of January; and

Bernmod was consecrated Bishop of Rochester.

A.D. 803. This year died Hibbald, Bishop of Holyisland, on the twentyfourth of June, and Egbert was

consecrated in his stead, on the thirteenth of June following. Archbishop Ethelherd also died in Kent, and

Wulfred was chosen archbishop in his stead. Abbot Forthred, in the course of the same year, departed this

life.

A.D. 804. This year Archbishop Wulfred received his pall.

A.D. 805. This year died King Cuthred in Kent, and Abbess Colburga, and Alderman Herbert.

A.D. 806. This year was the moon eclipsed, on the first o[ September; Erdwulf, king of the Northumbrians,

was banished from his dominions; and Eanbert, Bishop of Hexham, departed this life. This year also, on the

next day before the nones of June, a cross was seen in the moon, on a Wednesday, at the dawn; and

afterwards, during the same year, on the third day before the calends of September, a wonderful circle was

displayed about the sun.

A.D. 807. This year was the sun eclipsed, precisely at eleven in the morning, on the seventeenth day before

the calends of August.

A.D. 812. This year died the Emperor Charlemagne, after a reign of five and forty winters; and Archbishop

Wulfred, accompanied by Wigbert, Bishop of Wessex, undertook a journey to Rome.

A.D. 813. This year Archbishop Wulfred returned to his own see, with the blessing of Pope Leo; and King

Egbert spread devastation in Cornwall from east to west.

A.D. 814. This year died Leo, the noble and holy pope; and Stephen succeeded him in the papal government.


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part II 32



Top




Page No 35


A.D. 816. This year died Pope Stephen; and Paschalis was consecrated pope after him. This same year the

school of the English nation at Rome was destroyed by fire.

A.D. 819. This year died Cenwulf, King of Mercia; and Ceolwulf (33) succeeded him. Alderman Eadbert also

departed this life.

A.D. 821. This year Ceolwulf was deprived of his kingdom.

A.D. 822. This year two aldermen were slain, whose names were Burhelm and Mucca; and a synod was

holden at Cliff'sHoo.

A.D. 823. This year a battle was fought between the Welsh in Cornwall and the people of Devonshire, at

Camelford; and in the course of the same year Egbert, king of the WestSaxons, and Bernwulf, King of

Mercia, fought a battle at Wilton, in which Egbert gained the victory, but there was great slaughter on both

sides. Then sent he his son Ethelwulf into Kent, with a large detachment from the main body of the army,

accompanied by his bishop, Elstan, and his alderman, Wulfherd; who drove Baldred, the king, northward

over the Thames. Whereupon the men of Kent immediately submitted to him; as did also the inhabitants of

Surrey, and Sussex, and Essex; who had been unlawfully kept from their allegiance by his relatives. The

same year also, the king of the EastAngles, and his subjects besought King Egbert to give them peace and

protection against the terror of the Mercians; whose king, Bernwulf, they slew in the course of the same year.

A.D. 825. This year Ludecan, King of Mercia, was slain, and his five aldermen with him; after which Wiglaf

succeeded to the kingdom.

A.D. 827. This year was the moon eclipsed, on midwinter's mass night; and King Egbert, in the course of

the same year, conquered the Mercian kingdom, and all that is south of the Humber, being the eighth king

who was sovereign of all the British dominions. Ella, king of the SouthSaxons, was the first who possessed

so large a territory; the second was Ceawlin, king of the West Saxons: the third was Ethelbert, King of

Kent; the fourth was Redwald, king of the EastAngles; the fifth was Edwin, king of the Northumbrians; the

sixth was Oswald, who succeeded him; the seventh was Oswy, the brother of Oswald; the eighth was Egbert,

king of the WestSaxons. This same Egbert led an army against the Northumbrians as far as Dore, where

they met him, and offered terms of obedience and subjection, on the acceptance of which they returned home.

A.D. 828. This year Wiglaf recovered his Mercian kingdom, and Bishop Ethelwald departed this life. The

same year King Egbert led an army against the people of NorthWales, and compelled them all to peaceful

submission.

A.D. 829. This year died Archbishop Wulfred; and Abbot Feologild was after him chosen to the see, on the

twentyfifth of April, and consecrated on a Sunday, the eleventh of June. On the thirteenth of August he was

dead!

A.D. 830. This year Ceolnoth was chosen and consecrated archbishop on the death of Abbot Feologild.

A.D. 831. This year Archbishop Ceolnoth received the pall.

A.D. 832. This year heathen men overran the Isle of Shepey.

A.D. 833. This year fought King Egbert with thirtyfive pirates at Charmouth, where a great slaughter was

made, and the Danes remained masters of the field. Two bishops, Hereferth and Wigen, and two aldermen,

Dudda and Osmod, died the same year.


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part II 33



Top




Page No 36


A.D. 835. This year came a great naval armament into WestWales, where they were joined by the people,

who commenced war against Egbert, the WestSaxon king. When he heard this, he proceeded with his army

against them and fought with them at Hengeston, where he put to flight both the Welsh and the Danes.

A.D. 836. This year died King Egbert. Him Offa, King of Mercia, and Bertric, the WestSaxon king, drove

out of England into France three years before he was king. Bertric assisted Offa because he had married his

daughter. Egbert having afterwards returned, reigned thirtyseven winters and seven months. Then

Ethelwulf, the son of Egbert, succeeded to the WestSaxon kingdom; and he gave his son Athelstan the

kingdom of Kent, and of Essex, and of Surrey, and of Sussex.

A.D. 837. This year Alderman Wulfherd fought at Hamton with thirtythree pirates, and after great slaughter

obtained the victory, but he died the same year. Alderman Ethelhelm also, with the men of Dorsetshire,

fought with the Danish army in Portlandisle, and for a good while put them to flight; but in the end the

Danes became masters of the field, and slew the alderman.

A.D. 838. This year Alderman Herbert was slain by the heathens, and many men with him, among the

Marshlanders. The same year, afterwards, in Lindsey, EastAnglia, and Kent, were many men slain by the

army.

A.D. 839. This year there was great slaughter in London, Canterbury, and Rochester.

A.D. 840. This year King Ethelwulf fought at Charmouth with thirtyfive ship'screws, and the Danes

remained masters of the place. The Emperor Louis died this year.

A.D. 845. This year Alderman Eanwulf, with the men of Somersetshire, and Bishop Ealstan, and Alderman

Osric, with the men of Dorsetshire, fought at the mouth of the Parret with the Danish army; and there, after

making a great slaughter, obtained the victory.

A.D. 851. This year Alderman Ceorl, with the men of Devonshire, fought the heathen army at Wemburg, and

after making great slaughter obtained the victory. The same year King Athelstan and Alderman Elchere

fought in their ships, and slew a large army at Sandwich in Kent, taking nine ships and dispersing the rest.

The heathens now for the first time remained over winter in the Isle of Thanet. The same year came three

hundred and fifty ships into the mouth of the Thames; the crew of which went upon land, and stormed

Canterbury and London; putting to flight Bertulf, king of the Mercians, with his army; and then marched

southward over the Thames into Surrey. Here Ethelwulf and his son Ethelbald, at the head of the

WestSaxon army, fought with them at Ockley, and made the greatest slaughter of the heathen army that we

have ever heard reported to this present day. There also they obtained the victory.

A.D. 852. About this time Abbot Ceolred of Medhamsted, with the concurrence of the monks, let to hand the

land of Sempringham to Wulfred, with the provision, that after his demise the said land should revert to the

monastery; that Wulfred should give the land of Sleaford to Meohamsted, and should send each year into the

monastery sixty loads of wood, twelve loads of coal, six loads of peat, two tuns full of fine ale, two neats'

carcases, six hundred loaves, and ten kilderkins of Welsh ale; one horse also each year, and thirty shillings,

and one night's entertainment. This agreement was made in the presence of King Burhred. Archbishop

Ceolnoth, Bishops Tunbert, Kenred, Aldhun, and Bertred; Abbots Witred and Weftherd, Aldermen Ethelherd

and Hunbert, and many others.

A.D. 853. This year Burhred, King of Mercia, with his council, besought King Ethelwulf to assist him to

subdue NorthWales. He did so; and with an army marched over Mercia into NorthWales, and made all the

inhabitants subject to him. The same year King Ethelwulf sent his son Alfred to Rome; and Leo, who was

then pope, consecrated him king, and adopted him as his spiritual son. The same year also Elchere with the


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part II 34



Top




Page No 37


men of Kent, and Huda with the men of Surrey, fought in the Isle of Thanet with the heathen army, and soon

obtained the victory; but there were many men slain and drowned on either hand, and both the aldermen

killed. Burhred, the Mercian king, about this time received in marriage the daughter of Ethelwulf, king of the

WestSaxons.

A.D. 854. This year the heathen men (34) for the first time remained over winter in the Isle of Shepey. The

same year King Ethelwulf registered a TENTH of his land over all his kingdom for the honour of God and for

his own everlasting salvation. The same year also he went to Rome with great pomp, and was resident there a

twelvemonth. Then he returned homeward; and Charles, king of the Franks, gave him his daughter, whose

name was Judith, to be his queen. After this he came to his people, and they were fain to receive him; but

about two years after his residence among the Franks he died; and his body lies at Winchester. He reigned

eighteen years and a half. And Ethelwulf was the son of Egbert, Egbert of Ealhmund, Ealhmund of Eafa, Eafa

of Eoppa, Eoppa of Ingild; Ingild was the brother of Ina, king of the WestSaxons, who held that kingdom

thirtyseven winters, and afterwards went to St. Peter, where he died. And they were the sons of Cenred,

Cenred of Ceolwald, Ceolwald of Cutha, Cutha of Cuthwin, Cuthwin of Ceawlin, Ceawlin of Cynric, Cynric

of Creoda, Creoda of Cerdic, Cerdic of Elesa, Elesa of Esla, Esla of Gewis, Gewis of Wig, Wig of Freawine,

Freawine of Frithugar, Frithugar of Brond, Brond of Balday, Balday of Woden, Woden of Frithuwald,

Frithuwald of Freawine, Freawine of Frithuwualf, Frithuwulf of Finn, Finn of Godwulf, Godwulf of Great,

Great of Taetwa, Taetwa of Beaw, Beaw of Sceldwa, Sceldwa of Heremod, Heremod of Itermon, Itermon of

Hathra, Hathra of Hwala, Hwala of Bedwig, Bedwig of Sceaf; that is, the son of Noah, who was born in

Noah's ark: Laznech, Methusalem, Enoh, Jared, Malalahel, Cainion, Enos, Seth, Adam the first man, and our

Father, that is, Christ. Amen. Then two sons of Ethelwulf succeeded to the kingdom; Ethelbald to Wessex,

and Ethelbert to Kent, Essex, Surrey, and Sussex. Ethelbald reigned five years. Alfred, his third son,

Ethelwulf had sent to Rome; and when the pope heard say that he was dead, he consecrated Alfred king, and

held him under spiritual hands, as his father Ethelwulf had desired, and for which purpose he had sent him

thither.

((A.D. 855. And on his return homewards he took to (wife) the daughter of Charles, king of the French,

whose name was Judith, and he came home safe. And then in about two years he died, and his body lies at

Winchester: and he reigned eighteen years and a half, and he was the son of Egbert. And then his two sons

succeeded to the kingdom; Ethelbald to the kingdom of the WestSaxons, and Ethelbert to the kingdom of

the Kentishmen, and of the EastSaxons, and of Surrey, and of the SouthSaxons. And he reigned five

years.))

A.D. 860. This year died King Ethelbald, and his body lies at Sherborn. Ethelbert his brother then succeeded

to the whole kingdom, and held it in good order and great tranquillity. In his days came a large naval force up

into the country, and stormed Winchester. But Alderman Osric, with the command of Hampshire, and

Alderman Ethelwulf, with the command of Berkshire, fought against the enemy, and putting them to flight,

made themselves masters of the field of battle. The said Ethelbert reigned five years, and his body lies at

Sherborn.

A.D. 861. This year died St. Swithun, bishop.

A.D. 865. This year sat the heathen army in the isle of Thanet, and made peace with the men of Kent, who

promised money therewith; but under the security of peace, and the promise of money, the army in the night

stole up the country, and overran all Kent eastward.

A.D. 866. This year Ethered, (35) brother of Ethelbert, took to the WestSaxon government; and the same

year came a large heathen army into England, and fixed their winterquarters in East Anglia, where they

were soon horsed; and the inhabitants made peace with them.


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part II 35



Top




Page No 38


A.D. 867. This year the army went from the EastAngles over the mouth of the Humber to the

Northumbrians, as far as York. And there was much dissension in that nation among themselves; they had

deposed their king Osbert, and had admitted Aella, who had no natural claim. Late in the year, however, they

returned to their allegiance, and they were now fighting against the common enemy; having collected a vast

force, with which they fought the army at York; and breaking open the town, some of them entered in. Then

was there an immense slaughter of the Northumbrians, some within and some without; and both the kings

were slain on the spot. The survivors made peace with the army. The same year died Bishop Ealstan, who had

the bishopric of Sherborn fifty winters, and his body lies in the town.

A.D. 868. This year the same army went into Mercia to Nottingham, and there fixed their winterquarters;

and Burhred, king of the Mercians, with his council, besought Ethered, king of the WestSaxons, and Alfred,

his brother; that they would assist them in fighting against the army. And they went with the West Saxon

army into Mercia as far as Nottingham, and there meeting the army on the works, they beset them within. But

there was no heavy fight; for the Mercians made peace with the army.

A.D. 869. This year the army went back to York, and sat there a year.

A.D. 870. This year the army rode over Mercia into EastAnglia, and there fixed their winterquarters at

Thetford. And in the winter King Edmund fought with them; but the Danes gained the victory, and slew the

king; whereupon they overran all that land, and destroyed all the monasteries to which they came. The names

of the leaders who slew the king were Hingwar and Hubba. At the same time came they to Medhamsted,

burning and breaking, and slaying abbot and monks, and all that they there found. They made such havoc

there, that a monastery, which was before full rich, was now reduced to nothing. The same year died

Archbishop Ceolnoth; and Ethered, Bishop of Witshire, was chosen Archbishop of Canterbury.

A.D. 871. This year came the army to Reading in Wessex; and in the course of three nights after rode two

earls up, who were met by Alderman Ethelwulf at Englefield; where he fought with them, and obtained the

victory. There one of them was slain, whose name was Sidrac. About four nights after this, King Ethered and

Alfred his brother led their main army to Reading, where they fought with the enemy; and there was much

slaughter on either hand, Alderman Ethelwulf being among the skain; but the Danes kept possession of the

field. And about four nights after this, King Ethered and Alfred his brother fought with all the army on

Ashdown, and the Danes were overcome. They had two heathen kings, Bagsac and Healfden, and many earls;

and they were in two divisions; in one of which were Bagsac and Healfden, the heathen kings, and in the

other were the earls. King Ethered therefore fought with the troops of the kings, and there was King Bagsac

slain; and Alfred his brother fought with the troops of the earls, and there were slain Earl Sidrac the elder,

Earl Sidrac the younger, Earl Osbern, Earl Frene, and Earl Harold. They

put both the troops to flight; there were many thousands of the slain, and they continued fighting till night.

Within a fortnight of this, King Ethered and Alfred his brother fought with the army at Basing; and there the

Danes had the victory. About two months after this, King Ethered and Alfred his brother fought with the

army at Marden. They were in two divisions; and they put them both to flight, enjoying the victory for some

time during the day; and there was much slaughter on either hand; but the Danes became masters of the field;

and there was slain Bishop Heahmund, with many other good men. After this fight came a vast army in the

summer to Reading. And after the Easter of this year died King Ethered. He reigned five years, and his body

lies at Winburnminster. Then Alfred, his brother, the son of Ethelwulf, took to the kingdom of Wessex. And

within a month of this, King Alfred fought against all the Army with a small force at Wilton, and long

pursued them during the day; but the Danes got possession of the field. This year were nine general battles

fought with the army in the kingdom south of the Thames; besides those skirmishes, in which Alfred the

king's brother, and every single alderman, and the thanes of the king, oft rode against them; which were

accounted nothing. This year also were slain nine earls, and one king; and the same year the WestSaxons

made peace with the army.


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part II 36



Top




Page No 39


((A.D. 871. And the Danishmen were overcome; and they had two heathen kings, Bagsac and Halfdene, and

many earls; and there was King Bagsac slain, and these earls; Sidrac the elder, and also Sidrac the younger,

Osbern, Frene, and Harold; and the army was put to flight.))

A.D. 872. This year went the army to London from Reading, and there chose their winterquarters. Then the

Mercians made peace with the army.

A.D. 873. This year went the army against the Northumbrians, and fixed their winterquarters at Torksey in

Lindsey. And the Mercians again made peace with the army.

A.D. 874. This year went the army from Lindsey to Repton, and there took up their winterquarters, drove

the king, Burhred, over sea, when he had reigned about two and twenty winters, and subdued all that land. He

then went to Rome, and there remained to the end of his life. And his body lies in the church of Sancta Maria,

in the school of the English nation. And the same year they gave Ceolwulf, an unwise king's thane, the

Mercian kingdom to hold; and he swore oaths to them, and gave hostages, that it should be ready for them on

whatever day they would have it; and he would be ready with himself, and with all those that would remain

with him, at the service of the army.

A.D. 875. This year went the army from Repton; and Healfden advanced with some of the army against the

Northumbrians, and fixed his winterquarters by the river Tine. The army then subdued that land, and oft

invaded the Picts and the Strathclydwallians. Meanwhile the three kings, Guthrum, Oskytel, and Anwind,

went from Repton to Cambridge with a vast army, and sat there one year. This summer King Alfred went out

to sea with an armed fleet, and fought with seven shiprovers, one of whom he took, and dispersed the

others.

A.D. 876. This year Rolla penetrated Normandy with his army; and he reigned fifty winters. And this year the

army stole into Wareham, a fort of the WestSaxons. The king afterwards made peace with them; and they

gave him as hostages those who were worthiest in the army; and swore with oaths on the holy bracelet, which

they would not before to any nation, that they would readily go out of his kingdom. Then, under colour of

this, their cavalry stole by night into Exeter. The same year Healfden divided the land of the Northumbrians;

so that they became afterwards their harrowers and plowers.

((A.D. 876. And in this same year the army of the Danes in England swore oaths to King Alfred upon the

holy ring, which before they would not do to any nation; and they delivered to the king hostages from among

the most distinguished men of the army, that they would speedily depart from his kingdom; and that by night

they broke.))

A.D. 877. This year came the Danish army into Exeter from Wareham; whilst the navy sailed west about,

until they met with a great mist at sea, and there perished one hundred and twenty ships at Swanwich. (36)

Meanwhile King Alfred with his army rode after the cavalry as far as Exeter; but he could not overtake them

before their arrival in the fortress, where they could not be come at. There they gave him as many hostages as

he required, swearing with solemn oaths to observe the strictest amity. In the harvest the army entered

Mercia; some of which they divided among them, and some they gave to Ceolwulf.

A.D. 878. This year about midwinter, after twelfthnight, the Danish army stole out to Chippenham, and

rode over the land of the WestSaxons; where they settled, and drove many of the people over sea; and of the

rest the greatest part they rode down, and subdued to their will;  ALL BUT ALFRED THE KING. He,

with a little band, uneasily sought the woods and fastnesses of the moors. And in the winter of this same year

the brother of Ingwar and Healfden landed in Wessex, in Devonshire, with three and twenty ships, and there

was he slain, and eight hundred men with him, and forty of his army. There also was taken the war flag,

which they called the RAVEN. In the Easter of this year King Alfred with his little force raised a work at


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part II 37



Top




Page No 40


Athelney; from which he assailed the army, assisted by that part of Somersetshire which was nighest to it.

Then, in the seventh week after Easter, he rode to Brixton by the eastern side of Selwood; and there came out

to meet him all the people of Somersersetshire, and Wiltshire, and that part of Hampshire which is on this

side of the sea; and they rejoiced to see him. Then within one night he went from this retreat to Hey; and

within one night after he proceeded to Heddington; and there fought with all the army, and put them to flight,

riding after them as far as the fortress, where he remained a fortnight. Then the army gave him hostages with

many oaths, that they would go out of his kingdom. They told him also, that their king would receive

baptism. And they acted accordingly; for in the course of three weeks after, King Guthrum, attended by some

thirty of the worthiest men that were in the army, came to him at Aller, which is near Athelney, and there the

king became his sponsor in baptism; and his crisomleasing was at Wedmor. He was there twelve nights with

the king, who honoured him and his attendants with many presents.

A.D. 879. This year went the army from Chippenham to Cirencester, and sat there a year. The same year

assembled a band of pirates, and sat at Fulham by the Thames. The same year also the sun was eclipsed one

hour of the day.

A.D. 880. This year went the army from Cirencester into East Anglia, where they settled, and divided the

land. The same year went the army over sea, that before sat at Fulham, to Ghent in Frankland, and sat there a

year.

A.D. 881. This year went the army higher up into Frankland, and the Franks fought with them; and there was

the army horsed after the battle.

A.D. 882. This year went the army up along the Maese far into Frankland, and there sat a year; and the same

year went King Alfred out to sea with a fleet; and fought with four shiprovers of the Danes, and took two of

their ships; wherein all the men were slain; and the other two surrendered; but the men were severely cut and

wounded ere they surrendered.

A.D. 883. This year went the army up the Scheldt to Conde, and there sat a year. And Pope Marinus sent

King Alfred the "lignum Domini". The same year led Sighelm and Athelstan to Rome the alms which King

Alfred ordered thither, and also in India to St. Thomas and to St. Bartholomew. Then they sat against the

army at London; and there, with the favour of God, they were very successful after the performance of their

vows.

A.D. 884. This year went the army up the Somne to Amiens, and there remained a year. This year died the

benevolent Bishop Athelwold.

A.D. 885. This year separated the beforementioned army in two; one part east, another to Rochester. This

city they surrounded, and wrought another fortress around themselves. The people, however, defended the

city, until King Alfred came out with his army. Then went the enemy to their ships, and forsook their work.

There were they provided with horses; and soon after, in the same summer, they went over sea again. The

same year sent King Alfred a fleet from Kent into EastAnglia. As soon as they came to Stourmouth, there

met them sixteen ships of the pirates. And they fought with them, took all the ships, and slew the men. As

they returned homeward with their booty, they met a large fleet of the pirates, and fought with them the same

day; but the Danes had the victory. The same year, ere midwinter, died Charles, king of the Franks. He was

slain by a boar; and one year before his brother died, who had also the Western kingdom. They were both the

sons of Louis, who also had the Western kingdom, and died the same year that the sun was eclipsed. He was

the son of that Charles whose daughter Ethelwulf, king of the WestSaxons, had to wife. And the same year

collected a great fleet against OldSaxony; and there was a great fight twice in the year, and the Saxons had

the victory. There were the Frieslanders with them. And the same year succeeded Charles to the Western

kingdom, and to all the territory this side of the Mediterranean and beyond, as his greatgrandfather held it,


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part II 38



Top




Page No 41


except the Lidwiccians. The said Charles was the son of Louis, who was the brother of that Charles who was

the father of Judith, whom Ethelwulf, king of the WestSaxons, married. They were the sons of Louis, who

was the son of the elder Charles, who was the son of Pepin. The same year died the good Pope Martin, who

freed the English school at the request of Alfred, king of the WestSaxons. And he sent him great gifts in

relics, and a part of the rood on which Christ suffered. And the same year the army in EastAnglia brake the

truce with King Alfred.

A.D. 886. This year went the army back again to the west, that before were bent eastward; and proceeding

upwards along the Seine, fixed their winterquarters in the city of Paris. (37) The same year also King Alfred

fortified the city of London; and the whole English nation turned to him, except that part of it which was held

captive by the Danes. He then committed the city to the care of Alderman Ethered, to hold it under him.

A.D. 887. This year the army advanced beyond the bridge at Paris; (38) and then upwards, along the Seine, to

the Marne. Then upwards on the Marne as far as Chezy; and in their two stations, there and on the Yonne,

they abode two winters. This same year died Charles, king of the Franks. Arnulf, his brother's son, had six

weeks before his death bereft him of his kingdom; which was now divided into five portions, and five kings

were consecrated thereto. This, however, was done with the consent of Arnulf; and they agreed that they

should hold in subjection to him; because none of them had by birth any claim on the father's side, except

him alone. Arnulf, therefore, dwelt in the country eastward of the Rhine; Rodulf took to the middle district;

Oda to the western; whilst Berenger and Witha became masters of Lombardy and the Cisalpine territory. But

they held their dominion in great discord; fought two general battles, and frequently overran the country in

partial encounters, displacing each other several times. The same year also, in which the Danish army

advanced beyond the bridge at Paris, Alderman Ethelhelm led the alms of the WestSaxons and of King

Alfred to Rome.

A.D. 888. This year Alderman Beeke conducted the alms of the WestSaxons and of King Alfred to Rome;

but Queen Ethelswith, who was the sister of King Alfred, died on the way to Rome; and her body lies at

Pavia. The same year also Ethered, Archbishop of Canterbury and Alderman Ethelwold, died in one month.

A.D. 889. This year there was no journey to Rome; except that King Alfred sent two messengers with letters.

A.D. 890. This year Abbot Bernhelm conducted the alms of the WestSaxons and of King Alfred to Rome;

and Guthrum, king of the Northern men, departed this life, whose baptismal name was Athelstan. He was the

godson of King Alfred; and he abode among the EastAngles, where he first established a settlement. The

same year also went the army from the Seine to Saint Lo, which is between the Bretons and the Franks;

where the Bretons fought with them, obtained the victory, and drove them out into a river, in which many of

them were drowned. This year also was Plegmund chosen by God and all his saints to the archbishopric in

Canterbury.

A.D. 891. This year went the army eastward; and King Arnulf fought with the landforce, ere the ships

arrived, in conjunction with the eastern Franks, and Saxons, and Bavarians, and put them to flight. And three

Scots came to King Alfred in a boat without any oars from Ireland; whence they stole away, because they

would live in a state of pilgrimage, for the love of God, they recked not where. The boat in which they came

was made of two hides and a half; and they took with them provisions for seven nights; and within seven

nights they came to land in Cornwall, and soon after went to King Alfred. They were thus named: Dubslane,

and Macbeth, and Maelinmun. And Swinney, the best teacher that was among the Scots, departed this life.

And the same year after Easter, about the gangdays or before, appeared the star that men in bookLatin call

"cometa": some men say that in English it may be termed "hairy star"; for that there standeth off from it a

long gleam of light, whilom on one side, whilom on each.


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part II 39



Top




Page No 42


A.D. 893. This year went the large army, that we before spoke about, back from the eastern district westward

to Bologne; and there were shipped; so that they transported themselves over at one time with their horses

withal. And they came up with two hundred and fifty ships into the mouth of the Limne, which is in

EastKent, at the east end of the vast wood that we call Andred. This wood is in length, east and west, one

hundred and twenty miles, or longer, and thirty miles broad. The river that we before spoke about lieth out of

the weald. On this river they towed up their ships as far as the weald, four miles from the mouth outwards;

and there destroyed a fort within the fen, whereon sat a few churls, and which was hastily wrought. Soon

after this came Hasten up with eighty ships into the mouth of the Thames, and wrought him there a work at

Milton, and the other army at Appledore.

A.D. 894. This year, that was about twelve months after they had wrought a work in the eastern district, the

Northumbrians and EastAngles had given oaths to King Alfred, and the EastAngles six hostages;

nevertheless, contrary to the truce, as oft as the other plunderers went out with all their army, then went they

also, either with them, or in a separate division. Upon this King Alfred gathered his army, and advanced, so

that he encamped between the two armies at the highest point he could find defended by wood and by water,

that he might reach either, if they would seek any field. Then went they forth in quest of the wealds, in troops

and companies, wheresoever the country was defenceless. But they were also sought after most days by other

companies, either by day or by night, both from the army and also from the towns. The king had divided his

army into two parts; so that they were always half at home, half out; besides the men that should maintain the

towns. The army came not all out of their stations more than twice; once, when they first came to land, ere

the forces were collected, and again, when they wished to depart from their stations. They had now seized

much booty, and would ferry it northward over Thames into Essex, to meet their ships. But the army rode

before them, fought with them at Farnham, routed their forces, and there arrested the booty. And they flew

over Thames without any ford, then up by the Colne on an island. Then the king's forces beset them without

as long as they had food; but they had their time set, and their meat noted. And the king was advancing

thitherwards on his march with the division that accompanied him. But while he was advancing thitherwards,

the other force was returning homewards. The Danes, however, still remained behind; for their king was

wounded in the fight, so that they could not carry him. Then collected together those that dwell in

Northumbria and EastAnglia about a hundred ships, and went south about; and with some forty more went

north about, and besieged a fort in Devonshire by the north sea; and those who went south about beset Exeter.

When the king heard that, then went he west towards Exeter with all his force, except a very considerable part

of the eastern army, who advanced till they came to London; and there being joined by the citizens and the

reinforcements that came from the west, they went east to Barnfleet. Hasten was there with his gang, who

before were stationed at Milton, and also the main army had come thither, that sat before in the mouth of the

Limne at Appledore. Hasten had formerly constructed that work at Barnfleet, and was then gone out on

plunder, the main army being at home. Then came the king's troops, and routed the enemy, broke down the

work, took all that was therein money, women, and children and brought all to London. And all the ships they

either broke to pieces, or burned, or brought to London or to Rochester. And Hasten's wife and her two sons

they brought to the king, who returned them to him, because one of them was his godson, and the other

Alderman Ethered's. They had adopted them ere Hasten came to Bamfleet; when he had given them hostages

and oaths, and the king had also given him many presents; as he did also then, when he returned the child and

the wife. And as soon as they came to Bamfleet, and the work was built, then plundered he in the same

quarter of his kingdom that Ethered his compeer should have held; and at another time he was plundering in

the same district when his work was destroyed. The king then went westward with the army toward Exeter, as

I before said, and the army had beset the city; but whilst he was gone they went to their ships. Whilst he was

thus busied there with the army, in the west, the marauding parties were both gathered together at Shobury in

Essex, and there built a fortress. Then they both went together up by the Thames, and a great concourse

joined them, both from the EastAngles and from the Northumbrians. They then advanced upward by the

Thames, till they arrived near the Severn. Then they proceeded upward by the Severn. Meanwhile assembled

Alderman Ethered, Alderman Ethelm, Alderman Ethelnoth, and the king's thanes, who were employed at

home at the works, from every town east of the Parret, as well as west of Selwood, and from the parts east


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part II 40



Top




Page No 43


and also north of the Thames and west of the Severn, and also some part of NorthWales. When they were all

collected together, they overtook the rear of the enemy at Buttington on the banks of the Severn, and there

beset them without on each side in a fortress. When they had sat there many weeks on both sides of the water,

and the king meanwhile was in Devonshire westward with the naval force, then were the enemy weighed

down with famine. They had devoured the greater part of their horses; and the rest had perished with hunger.

Then went they out to the men that sat on the eastern side of the river, and fought with them; but the

Christians had the victory. And there Ordhelm, the king's thane, was slain; and also many other king's thanes;

and of the Danes there were many slain, and that part of them that came away escaped only by flight. As soon

as they came into Essex to their fortress, and to their ships, then gathered the remnant again in EastAnglia

and from the Northumbrians a great force before winter, and having committed their wives and their ships

and their booty to the EastAngles, they marched on the stretch by day and night, till they arrived at a

western city in Wirheal that is called Chester. There the army could not overtake them ere they arrived within

the work: they beset the work though, without, some two days, took all the cattle that was thereabout, slew

the men whom they could overtake without the work, and all the corn they either burned or consumed with

their horses every evening. That was about a twelvemonth since they first came hither over sea.

A.D. 895. Soon after that, in this year, went the army from Wirheal into NorthWales; for they could not

remain there, because they were stripped both of the cattle and the corn that they had acquired by plunder.

When they went again out of North Wales with the booty they had acquired there, they marched over

Northumberland and EastAnglia, so that the king's army could not reach them till they came into Essex

eastward, on an island that is out at sea, called Mersey. And as the army returned homeward that had beset

Exeter, they went up plundering in Sussex nigh Chichester; but the townsmen put them to flight, and slew

many hundreds of them, and took some of their ships. Then, in the same year, before winter, the Danes, who

abode in Mersey, towed their ships up on the Thames, and thence up the Lea. That was about two years after

that they came hither over sea.

A.D. 896. This same year wrought the aforesaid army a work by the Lea, twenty miles above the city of

London. Then. in the summer of this year, went a large party of the citizens. and also of other folk, and made

an attack on the work of the Danes; but they were there routed, and some four of the king's thanes were slain.

In the harvest afterward the king encamped close to the city, whilst they reaped their corn, that the Danes

might not deprive them of the crop. Then, some day, rode the king up by the river; and observed a place

where the river might be obstructed, so that they could not bring out their ships. And they did so. They

wrought two works on the two sides of the river. And when they had begun the work, and encamped before

it, then understood the army that they could not bring out their ships. Whereupon they left them, and went

over land, till they came to Quatbridge by Severn; and there wrought a work. Then rode the king's army

westward after the enemy. And the men of London fetched the ships; and all that they could not lead away

they broke up; but all that were worthy of capture they brought into the port of London. And the Danes

procured an asylum for their wives among the EastAngles, ere they went out of the fort. During the winter

they abode at Quatbridge. That was about three years since they came hither over sea into the mouth of the

Limne.

A.D. 897. In the summer of this year went the army, some into EastAnglia, and some into Northumbria; and

those that were penniless got themselves ships, and went south over sea to the Seine. The enemy had not,

thank God. entirely destroyed the English nation; but they were much more weakened in these three years by

the disease of cattle, and most of all of men; so that many of the mightiest of the king's thanes. that were in

the land, died within the three years. Of these. one was Swithulf Bishop of Rochester, Ceolmund alderman in

Kent, Bertulf alderman in Essex, Wulfred alderman in Hampshire, Elhard Bishop of Dorchester, Eadulf a

king's thane in Sussex, Bernuff governor of Winchester, and Egulf the king's horsethane; and many also

with them; though I have named only the men of the highest rank. This same year the plunderers in

EastAnglia and Northumbria greatly harassed the land of the WestSaxons by piracies on the southern

coast, but most of all by the esks which they built many years before. Then King Alfred gave orders for


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part II 41



Top




Page No 44


building long ships against the esks, which were fullnigh twice as long as the others. Some had sixty oars,

some more; and they were both swifter and steadier, and also higher than the others. They were not shaped

either after the Frisian or the Danish model, but so as he himself thought that they might be most serviceable.

Then, at a certain turn of this same year, came six of their ships to the Isle of Wight; and going into

Devonshire, they did much mischief both there and everywhere on the seacoast. Then commanded the king

his men to go out against them with nine of the new ships, and prevent their escape by the mouth of the river

to the outer sea. Then came they out against them with three ships, and three others were standing upwards

above the mouth on dry land: for the men were gone off upon shore. Of the first three ships they took two at

the mouth outwards, and slew the men; the third veered off, but all the men were slain except five; and they

too were severely wounded. Then came onward those who manned the other ships, which were also very

uneasily situated. Three were stationed on that side of the deep where the Danish ships were aground, whilst

the others were all on the opposite side; so that none of them could join the rest; for the water had ebbed

many furlongs from them. Then went the Danes from their three ships to those other three that were on their

side, beebbed; and there they then fought. There were slain Lucomon, the king's reve, and Wulfheard, a

Frieslander; Ebb, a Frieslander, and Ethelere, a Frieslander; and Ethelferth, the king's neatherd; and of all

the men, Frieslanders and English, sixtytwo; of the Danes a hundred and twenty. The tide, however, reached

the Danish ships ere the Christians could shove theirs out; whereupon they rowed them out; but they were so

crippled, that they could not row them beyond the coast of Sussex: there two of them the sea drove ashore;

and the crew were led to Winchester to the king, who ordered them to be hanged. The men who escaped in

the single ship came to EastAnglia, severely wounded. This same year were lost no less than twenty ships,

and the men withal, on the southern coast. Wulfric, the king's horsethane, who was also viceroy of Wales,

died the same year.

A.D. 898. This year died Ethelm, alderman of Wiltshire, nine nights before midsummer; and Heahstan, who

was Bishop of London.

A.D. 901. This year died ALFRED, the son of Ethelwulf, six nights before the mass of All Saints. He was

king over all the English nation, except that part that was under the power of the Danes. He held the

government one year and a half less than thirty winters; and then Edward his son took to the government.

Then Prince Ethelwald, the son of his paternal uncle, rode against the towns of Winburn and of Twineham,

without leave of the king and his council. Then rode the king with his army; so that he encamped the same

night at Badbury near Winburn; and Ethelwald remained within the town with the men that were under him,

and had all the gates shut upon him, saying, that he would either there live or there die. But in the meantime

he stole away in the night, and sought the army in Northumberland. The king gave orders to ride after him;

but they were not able to overtake him. The Danes, however, received him as their king. They then rode after

the wife that Ethelwald had taken without the king's leave, and against the command of the bishops; for she

was formerly consecrated a nun. In this year also died Ethered, who was alderman of Devonshire, four weeks

before King Alfred.

A.D. 902. This year was the great fight at the Holme (39) between the men of Kent and the Danes.

((A.D. 902. This year Elswitha died.))

A.D. 903. This year died Alderman Ethelwulf, the brother of Elhswitha, mother of King Edward; and

Virgilius abbot of the Scots; and Grimbald the masspriest; on the eighth day of July. This same year was

consecrated the new minster at Winchester, on St. Judoc's advent.

A.D. 904. This year came Ethelwald hither over sea with all the fleet that he could get, and he was submitted

to in Essex. This year the moon was eclipsed.


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part II 42



Top




Page No 45


A.D. 905. This year Ethelwald enticed the army in EastAnglia to rebellion; so that they overran all the land

of Mercia, until they came to Cricklade, where they forded the Thames; and having seized, either in Bradon

or thereabout, all that they could lay their hands upon, they went homeward again. King Edward went after,

as soon as he could gather his army, and overran all their land between the foss and the Ouse quite to the fens

northward. Then being desirous of returning thence, he issued an order through the whole army, that they

should all go out at once. But the Kentish men remained behind, contrary to his order, though he had sent

seven messengers to them. Whereupon the army surrounded them, and there they fought. There fell

Aldermen Siwulf and Sigelm; Eadwold, the king's thane; Abbot Kenwulf; Sigebriht, the son of Siwulf;

Eadwald, the son of Acca; and many also with them; though I have named the most considerable. On the

Danish side were slain Eohric their king, and Prince Ethelwald, who had enticed them to the war. Byrtsige,

the son of Prince Brihtnoth; Governor Ysop; Governor Oskytel; and very many also with them that we now

cannot name. And there was on either hand much slaughter made; but of the Danes there were more slain,

though they remained masters of the field. Ealswitha died this same year; and a comet appeared on the

thirteenth day before the calends of November.

((A.D. 906. This year King Edward, from necessity, concluded a peace both with the army of EastAnglia

and of Northhumbria.))

A.D. 907. This year died Alfred, who was governor of Bath. The same year was concluded the peace at

Hitchingford, as King Edward decreed, both with the Danes of EastAnglia, and those of Northumberland;

and Chester was rebuilt.

A.D. 909. This year died Denulf, who was Bishop of Winchester; and the body of St. Oswald was translated

from Bardney into Mercia.

A.D. 910. This year Frithestan took to the bishopric of Winchester; and Asser died soon after, who was

Bishop o[ Sherborne. The same year King Edward sent an army both from Wessex and Mercia, which very

much harassed the northern army by their attacks on men and property of every kind. They slew many of the

Danes, and remained in the country five weeks. This year the Angles and the Danes fought at Tootenhall; and

the Angles had the victory. The same year Ethelfleda built the fortress at Bramsbury.

((A.D. 910. This year the army of the Angles and of the Danes fought at Tootenhall. And Ethelred, ealdor of

the Mercians, died; and King Edward took possession of London, and of Oxford, and of all the lands which

owed obedience thereto. And a great fleet came hither from the south, from the Lidwiccas (Brittany), and

greatly ravaged by the Severn; but they were, afterwards, almost all perished.))

A.D. 911. This year the army in Northumberland broke the truce, and despised every right that Edward and

his son demanded of them; and plundered the land of the Mercians. The king had gathered together about a

hundred ships, and was then in Kent while the ships were sailing along sea by the southeast to meet him.

The army therefore supposed that the greatest part of his force was in the ships, and that they might go,

without being attacked, where that ever they would. When the king learned on enquiry that they were gone

out on plunder, he sent his army both from Wessex and Mercia; and they came up with the rear of the enemy

as he was on his way homeward, and there fought with him and put him to flight, and slew many thousands

of his men. There fell King Eowils, and King Healfden; Earls Ohter and Scurf; Governors Agmund, Othulf,

and Benesing; Anlaf the Swarthy, and Governor Thunferth; Osferth the collector, and Governor Guthferth.

((A.D. 911. Then the next year after this died Ethelred, lord of the Mercians.))

A.D. 912. This year died Ethered, alderman of Mercia; and King Edward took to London, and to Oxford, and

to all the lands that thereunto belonged. This year also came Ethelfleda, lady of the Mercians, on the holy eve

called the invention of the holy cross, to Shergate, and built the fortress there, and the same year that at


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part II 43



Top




Page No 46


Bridgenorth.

A.D. 913. This year, about Martinmas, King Edward had the northern fortress built at Hertford, betwixt the

Memer, and the Benwic, and the Lea. After this, in the summer, betwixt gang days and midsummer, went

King Edward with some of his force into Essex, to Maldon; and encamped there the while that men built and

fortified the town of Witham. And many of the people submitted to him, who were before under the power of

the Danes. And some of his force, meanwhile, built the fortress at Hertford on the south side of the Lea. This

year by the permission of God went Ethelfleda, lady of Mercia, with all the Mercians to Tamworth; and built

the fort there in the forepart of the summer; and before Lammas that at Stafford: in the next year that at

Eddesbury, in the beginning of the summer; and the same year, late in the autumn, that at Warwick. Then in

the following year was built, after midwinter, that at Chirbury and that at Warburton; and the same year

before midwinter that at Runkorn.

((A.D. 915. This year was Warwick built.))

A.D. 916. This year was the innocent Abbot Egbert slain, before midsummer, on the sixteenth day before the

calends of July. The same day was the feast of St. Ciricius the martyr, with his companions. And within three

nights sent Ethelfleda an army into Wales, and stormed Brecknock; and there took the king's wife, with some

four and thirty others.

A.D. 917. This year rode the army, after Easter, out of Northampton and Leicester; and having broken the

truce they slew many men at Hookerton and thereabout. Then, very soon after this, as the others came home,

they found other troops that were riding out against Leighton. But the inhabitants were aware of it; and

having fought with them they put them into full flight; and arrested all that they had taken, and also of their

horses and of their weapons a good deal.

A.D. 918. This year came a great naval armament over hither south from the Lidwiccians; (40) and two earls

with it, Ohter and Rhoald. They went then west about, till they entered the mouth of the Severn; and

plundered in NorthWales everywhere by the sea, where it then suited them; and took Camlac the bishop in

Archenfield, and led him with them to their ships; whom King Edward afterwards released for forty pounds.

After this went the army all up; and would proceed yet on plunder against Archenfield; but the men of

Hertford met them, and of Glocester, and of the nighest towns; and fought with them, and put them to flight;

and they slew the Earl Rhoald, and the brother of Ohter the other earl, and many of the army. And they drove

them into a park; and beset them there without, until they gave them hostages, that they would depart from

the realm of King Edward. And the king had contrived that a guard should be set against them on the south

side of Severnmouth; west from Wales, eastward to the mouth of the Avon; so that they durst nowhere seek

that land on that side. Nevertheless, they eluded them at night, by stealing up twice; at one time to the east of

Watchet, and at another time at Porlock. There was a great slaughter each time; so that few of them came

away, except those only who swam out to the ships. Then sat they outward on an island, called the Flat

holms; till they were very short of meat, and many men died of hunger, because they could not reach any

meat. Thence went they to Dimmet, and then out to Ireland. This was in harvest. After this, in the same year,

before Martinmas, went King Edward to Buckingham with his army, and sat there four weeks, during which

he built the two forts on either side of the water, ere he departed thence. And Earl Thurkytel sought him for

his lord; and all the captains, and almost all the first men that belonged to Bedford; and also many of those

that belonged to Northampton. This year Ethelfleda, lady of the Mercians, with the help of God, before

Laminas, conquered the town called Derby, with all that thereto belonged; and there were also slain four of

her thanes, that were most dear to her, within the gates.

((A.D. 918. But very shortly after they had become so, she died at Tamworth, twelve days before

midsummer, the eighth year of her having rule and right lordship over the Mercians; and her body lies at

Gloucester, within the east porch of St. Peter's church.))


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part II 44



Top




Page No 47


A.D. 919. This year King Edward went with his army to Bedford, before Martinmas, and conquered the

town; and almost all the burgesses, who obeyed him before, returned to him; and he sat there four weeks, and

ordered the town to be repaired on the south side of the water, ere he departed thence.

((A.D. 919. This year also the daughter of Ethelred, lord of the Mercians, was deprived of all dominion over

the Mercians, and carried into Wessex, three weeks before midwinter; she was called Elfwina.))

Part III

A.D. 920. This year, before midsummer, went King Edward to Maldon; and repaired and fortified the town,

ere he departed thence. And the same year went Earl Thurkytel over sea to Frankland with the men who

would adhere to him, under the protection and assistance of King Edward. This year Ethelfleda got into her

power, with God's assistance, in the early part of the year, without loss, the town of Leicester; and the greater

part of the army that belonged thereto submitted to her. And the Yorkists had also promised and confirmed,

some by agreement and some with oaths, that they would be in her interest. But very soon after they had done

this, she departed, twelve nights before midsummer, at Tamworth, the eighth year that she was holding the

government of the Mercians with right dominion; and her body lieth at Glocester, in the east porch of St.

Peter's church. This year also was the daughter of Ethered, lord of the Mercians, deprived of all authority

over the Mercians, and led into Wessex, three weeks before midwinter. Her name was Healfwina.

A.D. 921. This year, before Easter, King Edward ordered his men to go to the town of Towcester, and to

rebuild it. Then again, after that, in the same year, during the gangdays, he ordered the town of Wigmore to

be repaired. The same summer, betwixt Lammas and midsummer, the army broke their parole from

Northampton and from Leicester; and went thence northward to Towcester, and fought against the town all

day, and thought that they should break into it; but the people that were therein defended it, till more aid

came to them; and the enemy then abandoned the town, and went away. Then again, very soon after this, they

went out at night for plunder, and came upon men unaware, and seized not a little, both in men and cattle,

betwixt Burnhamwood and Aylesbury. At the same time went the army from Huntington and EastAnglia,

and constructed that work at Ternsford; which they inhabited and fortified; and abandoned the other at

Huntingdon; and thought that they should thence oft with war and contention recover a good deal of this land.

Thence they advanced till they came to Bedford; where the men who were within came out against them, and

fought with them, and put them to flight, and slew a good number of them. Then again, after this, a great

army yet collected itself from EastAnglia and from Mercia, and went to the town of Wigmore; which they

besieged without, and fought against long in the day; and took the cattle about it; but the men defended the

town, who were within; and the enemy left the town, and went away. After this, the same summer, a large

force collected itself in King Edward's dominions, from the nighest towns that could go thither, and went to

Temsford; and they beset the town, and fought thereon; until they broke into it, and slew the king, and Earl

Toglos, and Earl Mann his son, and his brother, and all them that were therein, and who were resolved to

defend it; and they took the others, and all that was therein. After this, a great force collected soon in harvest,

from Kent, from Surrey, from Essex, and everywhere from the nighest towns; and went to Colchester, and

beset the town, and fought thereon till they took it, and slew all the people, and seized all that was therein;

except those men who escaped therefrom over the wall. After this again, this same harvest, a great army

collected itself from EastAnglia, both of the land forces and of the pirates, which they had enticed to their

assistance, and thought that they should wreak their vengeance. They went to Maldon, and beset the town,

and fought thereon, until more aid came to the townsmen from without to help. The enemy then abandoned

the town, and went from it. And the men went after, out of the town, and also those that came from without to

their aid; and put the army to flight, and slew many hundreds of them, both of the pirates and of the others.

Soon after this, the same harvest, went King Edward with the WestSaxon army to Passham; and sat there

the while that men fortified the town of Towcester with a stone wall. And there returned to him Earl

Thurferth, and the captains, and all the army that belonged to Northampton northward to the Welland, and

sought him for their lord and protector. When this division of the army went home, then went another out,


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part III 45



Top




Page No 48


and marched to the town of Huntingdon; and repaired and renewed it, where it was broken down before, by

command of King Edward. And all the people of the country that were left submitted to King Edward, and

sought his peace and protection. After this, the same year, before Martinmas, went King Edward with the

WestSaxon army to Colchester; and repaired and renewed the town, where it was broken down before. And

much people turned to him. both in East Anglia and in Essex, that were before under the power of the

Danes. And all the army in EastAnglia swore union with him; that they would all that he would, and would

protect all that he protected, either by sea or land. And the army that belonged to Cambridge chose him

separately for their lord and protector, and confirmed the same with oaths, as he had advised. This year King

Edward repaired the town of Gladmouth; and the same year King Sihtric slew Neil his brother.

A.D. 922. This year, betwixt gangdays and midsummer, went King Edward with his army to Stamford, and

ordered the town to be fortified on the south side of the river. And all the people that belonged to the northern

town submitted to him, and sought him for their lord. It was whilst he was tarrying there, that Ethelfleda his

sister died at Tamworth, twelve nights before midsummer. Then rode he to the borough of Tamworth; and all

the population in Mercia turned to him, who before were subject to Ethelfleda. And the kings in

NorthWales, Howel, and Cledauc, and Jothwel, and all the people of NorthWales, sought him for their

lord. Then went he thence to Nottingham, and secured that borough, and ordered it to be repaired, and

manned both with English and with Danes. And all the population turned to him, that was settled in Mercia,

both Danish and English.

A.D. 923. This year went King Edward with an army, late in the harvest, to Thelwall; and ordered the

borough to be repaired, and inhabited, and manned. And he ordered another army also from the population of

Mercia, the while he sat there to go to Manchester in Northumbria, to repair and to man it. This year died

Archbishop Plegmund; and King Reynold won York.

A.D. 924. This year, before midsummer, went King Edward with an army to Nottingham; and ordered the

town to be repaired on the south side of the river, opposite the other, and the bridge over the Trent betwixt the

two towns. Thence he went to Bakewell in Peakland; and ordered a fort to be built as near as possible to it,

and manned. And the King of Scotland, with all his people, chose him as father and lord; as did Reynold, and

the son of Eadulf, and all that dwell in Northumbria, both English and Danish, both Northmen and others;

also the king of the Strathclydwallians, and all his people.

((A.D. 924. This year Edward was chosen for father and for lord by the king of the Scots, and by the Scots,

and King Reginald, and by all the Northhumbrians, and also the king of the Strathclyde Britons, and by all

the Strathclyde Britons.))

((A.D. 924. This year King Edward died among the Mercians at Farndon; and very shortly, about sixteen

days after this, Elward his son died at Oxford; and their bodies lie at Winchester. And Athelstan was chosen

king by the Mercians, and consecrated at Kingston. And he gave his sister to Ofsae (Otho), son of the king of

the OldSaxons.))

A.D. 925. This year died King Edward at Farndon in Mercia; and Elward his son died very soon after this, in

Oxford. Their bodies lie at Winchester. And Athelstan was chosen king in Mercia, and consecrated at

Kingston. He gave his sister to Otho, son of the king of the OldSaxons. St. Dunstan was now born; and

Wulfhelm took to the archbishopric in Canterbury. This year King Athelstan and Sihtric king of the

Northumbrians came together at Tamworth, the sixth day before the calends of February, and Athelstan gave

away his sister to him.

((A.D. 925. This year Bishop Wulfhelm was consecrated. And that same year King Edward died.))


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part III 46



Top




Page No 49


A.D. 926. This year appeared fiery lights in the northern part of the firmament; and Sihtric departed; and

King Athelstan took to the kingdom of Northumbria, and governed all the kings that were in this island: 

First, Howel, King of WestWales; and Constantine, King of the Scots; and Owen, King of Monmouth; and

Aldred, the son of Eadulf, of Bamburgh. And with covenants and oaths they ratified their agreement in the

place called Emmet, on the fourth day before the ides of July; and renounced all idolatry, and afterwards

returned in peace.

A.D. 927. This year King Athelstan expelled King Guthfrith; and Archbishop Wulfhelm went to Rome.

A.D. 928. William took to Normandy, and held it fifteen years.

((A.D. 931. This year died Frithstan, Bishop of Winchester, and Brinstan was blessed in his place.))

A.D. 932. This year Burnstan was invested Bishop of Winchester on the fourth day before the calends of

June; and he held the bishopric two years and a half.

A.D. 933. This year died Bishop Frithestan; and Edwin the atheling was drowned in the sea.

A.D. 934. This year went King Athelstan into Scotland, both with a landforce and a naval armament, and

laid waste a great part of it; and Bishop Burnstan died at Winchester at the feast of All Saints.

A.D. 935. This year Bishop Elfheah took to the bishopric of Winchester.

((A.D. 937. This year King Athelstan and Edmund his brother led a force to Brumby, and there fought against

Anlaf; and, Christ helping, had the victory: and they there slew five kings and seven earls.))

A.D. 938. Here Athelstan king, of earls the lord, rewarder of heroes, and his brother eke, Edmund atheling,

elder of ancient race, slew in the fight, with the edge of their swords, the foe at Brumby! The sons of Edward

their boardwalls clove, and hewed their banners, with the wrecks of their hammers. So were they taught by

kindred zeal, that they at camp oft 'gainst any robber their land should defend, their hoards and homes.

Pursuing fell the Scottish clans; the men of the fleet in numbers fell; 'midst the din of the field the warrior

swate. Since the sun was up in morningtide, gigantic light! glad over grounds, God's candle bright, eternal

Lord!  'till the noble creature sat in the western main: there lay many of the Northern heroes under a

shower of arrows, shot over shields; and Scotland's boast, a Scythian race, the mighty seed of Mars! With

chosen troops, throughout the day, the WestSaxons fierce press'd on the loathed bands; hew'd down the

fugitives, and scatter'd the rear, with strong millsharpen'd blades, The Mercians too the hard handplay

spared not to any of those that with Anlaf over the briny deep in the ship's bosom sought this land for the

hardy fight. Five kings lay on the field of battle, in bloom of youth, pierced with swords. So seven eke of the

earls of Anlaf; and of the ship'screw unnumber'd crowds. There was dispersed the little band of hardy Scots,

the dread of northern hordes; urged to the noisy deep by unrelenting fate! The king of the fleet with his

slender craft escaped with his life on the felon flood;  and so too Constantine, the valiant chief, returned to

the north in hasty flight. The hoary Hildrinc cared not to boast among his kindred. Here was his remnant of

relations and friends slain with the sword in the crowded fight. His son too he left on the field of battle,

mangled with wounds, young at the fight. The fairhair'd youth had no reason to boast of the slaughtering

strife. Nor old Inwood and Anlaf the more with the wrecks of their army could laugh and say, that they on the

field of stern command better workmen were, in the conflict of banners, the clash of spears, the meeting of

heroes, and the rustling of weapons, which they on the field of slaughter played with the sons of Edward. The

northmen sail'd in their nailed ships, a dreary remnant, on the roaring sea; over deep water Dublin they

sought, and Ireland's shores, in great disgrace. Such then the brothers both together king and atheling, sought

their country, WestSaxon land, in right triumphant. They left behind them raw to devour, the sallow kite, the

swarthy raven with horny nib, and the hoarse vultur, with the eagle swift to consume his prey; the greedy


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part III 47



Top




Page No 50


goshawk, and that grey beast the wolf of the weald. No slaughter yet was greater made e'er in this island, of

people slain, before this same, with the edge of the sword; as the books inform us of the old historians; since

hither came from the eastern shores the Angles and Saxons, over the broad sea, and Britain sought,  fierce

battlesmiths, o'ercame the Welsh, most valiant earls, and gained the land.

A.D. 941. This year King Athelstan died in Glocester, on the sixth day before the calends of November, about

fortyone winters, bating one night, from the time when King Alfred died. And Edmund Atheling took to the

kingdom. He was then eighteen years old. King Athelstan reigned fourteen years and ten weeks. This year the

Northumbrians abandoned their allegiance, and chose Anlaf of Ireland for their king.

((A.D. 941. This year King Edmund received King Anlaf at baptism; and that same year, a good long space

after, he received King Reginald at the bishop's hands.))

A.D. 942. Here Edmund king, of Angles lord, protector of friends, author and framer of direful deeds. o'erran

with speed the Mercian land. whete'er the course of Whitwellspring, or Humber deep, The broad

brimstream, divides five towns. Leicester and Lincoln. Nottingham and Stamford, and Derby eke. In

thraldom long to Norman Danes they bowed through need, and dragged the chains of heathen men; till, to his

glory, great Edward's heir, Edmund the king, refuge of warriors, their fetters broke.

A.D. 943. This year Anlaf stormed Tamworth; and much slaughter was made on either hand; but the Danes

had the victory, and led away with them much plunder. There was Wulfrun taken, in the spoiling of the town.

This year King Edmund beset King Anlaf and Archbishop Wulfstan in Leicester; and he might have

conquered them, were it not that they burst out of the town in the night. After this Anlaf obtained the

friendship of King Edmund, and King Edmund then received King Anlaf in baptism; and he made him royal

presents. And the same year, after some interval, he received King Reynold at episcopal hands. This year also

died King Anlaf.

A.D. 944. This year King Edmund reduced all the land of the Northumbrians to his dominion, and expelled

two kings, Anlaf the son of Sihtric, and Reynold the son of Guthferth.

A.D. 945. This year King Edmund overran all Cumberland; and let it all to Malcolm king of the Scots, on the

condition that he became his ally, both by sea and land.

A.D. 946. This year King Edmund died, on St. Augustine's mass day. That was widely known, how he ended

his days:  that Leof stabbed him at Pucklechurch. And Ethelfleda of Damerham, daughter of Alderman

Elgar, was then his queen. And he reigned six years and a half: and then succeeded to the kingdom Edred

Atheling his brother, who soon after reduced all the land of the Northumbrians to his dominion; and the Scots

gave him oaths, that they would do all that he desired.

A.D. 947. This year came King Edred to Tadden'scliff; and there Archbishop Wulfstan and all the council of

the Northumbrians bound themselves to an allegiance with the king. And within a little space they abandoned

all, both allegiance and oaths.

A.D. 948. This year King Edred overran all Northumberland; because they had taken Eric for their king; and

in the pursuit of plunder was that large minster at Rippon set on fire, which St. Wilferth built. As the king

returned homeward, he overtook the enemy at York; but his main army was behind at Chesterford. There was

great slaughter made; and the king was so wroth, that he would fain return with his force, and lay waste the

land withal; but when the council of the Northumbrians understood that, they then abandoned Eric, and

compromised the deed with King Edred.

A.D. 949. This year came Anlaf Curran to the land of the Northumbrians.


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part III 48



Top




Page No 51


A.D. 951. This year died Elfeah, Bishop of Winchester, on St. Gregory's mass day.

A.D. 952. This year the Northumbrians expelled King Anlaf, and received Eric the son of Harold. This year

also King Edred ordered Archbishop Wulfstan to be brought into prison at Jedburgh; because he was oft

bewrayed before the king: and the same year the king ordered a great slaughter to be made in the town of

Thetford, in revenge of the abbot, whom they had formerly slain.

A.D. 954. This year the Northumbrians expelled Eric; and King Edred took to the government of the

Northumbrians. This year also Archbishop Wulfstan received a bishopric again at Dorchester.

A.D. 955. This year died King Edred, on St. Clement's mass day, at Frome.(41) He reigned nine years and a

half; and he rests in the old minster. Then succeeded Edwy, the son of King Edmund, to the government of

the WestSaxons; and Edgar Atheling, his brother, succeeded to the government of the Mercians. They were

the sons of King Edmund and of St. Elfgiva.

((A.D. 955. And Edwy succeeded to the kingdom of the West Saxons, and Edgar his brother succeeded to

the kingdom of the Mercians: and they were the sons of King Edmund and of S. Elfgiva.))

A.D. 956. This year died Wulfstan, Archbishop of York, on the seventeenth day before the calends of

January; and he was buried at Oundle; and in the same year was Abbot Dunstan driven out of this land over

sea.

A.D. 958. This year Archbishop Oda separated King Edwy and Elfgiva; because they were too nearly related.

A.D. 959. This year died King Edwy, on the calends of October; and Edgar his brother took to the

government of the WestSaxons, Mercians, and Northumbrians. He was then sixteen years old. It was in this

year he sent after St. Dunstan, and gave him the bishopric of Worcester; and afterwards the bishopric of

London. In his days it prosper'd well; and God him gave, that he dwelt in peace the while that he lived.

Whate'er he did, whate'er he plan'd, he earn'd his thrift. He also rear'd God's glory wide, and God's law lov'd,

with peace to man, above the kings that went before in man's remembrance. God so him sped, that kings and

earls to all his claims submissive bow'd; and to his will without a blow he wielded all as pleased himself.

Esteem'd he was both far and wide in distant lands; because he prized the name of God, and God's law traced,

God's glory rear'd, both far and wide, on every side. Wisely he sought in council oft his people's good, before

his God, before the world. One misdeed he did, too much however, that foreign tastes he loved too much; and

heathen modes into this land he brought too fast; outlandish men hither enticed; and to this earth attracted

crowds of vicious men. But God him grant, that his good deeds be weightier far than his misdeeds, to his

soul's redemption on the judgmentday.

A.D. 961. This year departed Odo, the good archbishop, and St. Dunstan took to the archbishopric. This year

also died Elfgar, a relative of the king, in Devonshire; and his body lies at Wilton: and King Sifferth killed

himself; and his body lies at Wimborn. This year there was a very great pestilence; when the great fever was

in London; and St. Paul's minster was consumed with fire, and in the same year was afterwards restored. In

this year Athelmod. the masspriest, went to Rome, and there died on the eighteenth before the calends of

September.

A.D. 963. This year died Wulfstan, the deacon, on Childermass day; (42) and afterwards died Gyric, the

masspriest. In the same year took Abbot Athelwold to the bishopric of Winchester; and he was consecrated

on the vigil of St. Andrew, which happened on a Sunday. On the second year after he was consecrated, he

made many minsters; and drove out the clerks (43) from the bishopric, because they would hold no rule, and

set monks therein. He made there two abbacies; one of monks, another of nuns. That was all within

Winchester. Then came he afterwards to King Edgar, and requested that he would give him all the minsters


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part III 49



Top




Page No 52


that heathen men had before destroyed; for that he would renew them. This the king cheerfully granted; and

the bishop came then first to Ely, where St. Etheldritha lies, and ordered the minster to be repaired; which he

gave to a monk of his, whose name was Britnoth, whom he consecrated abbot: and there he set monks to

serve God, where formerly were nuns. He then bought many villages of the king, and made it very rich.

Afterwards came Bishop Athelwold to the minster called Medhamsted, which was formerly ruined by

heathen folk; but he found there nothing but old walls, and wild woods. In the old walls at length he found

hid writings which Abbot Hedda had formerly written;  how King Wulfhere and Ethelred his brother had

wrought it, and how they freed it against king and against bishop, and against all worldly service; and how

Pope Agatho confirmed it with his writ, as also Archbishop Deusdedit. He then ordered the minster to be

rebuilt; and set there an abbot, who was called Aldulf; and made monks, where before was nothing. He then

came to the king, and let him look at the writings which before were found; and the king then answered and

said: "I Edgar grant and give today, before God and before Archbishop Dunstan, freedom to St. Peter's

minster at Medhamsted, from king and from bishop; and all the thorps that thereto lie; that is, Eastfield, and

Dodthorp, and Eye, and Paston. And so I free it, that no bishop have any jurisdiction there, but the abbot of

the minster alone. And I give the town called Oundle, with all that thereto lieth, called Eyothundred, with

market and toll; so freely, that neither king, nor bishop, nor earl, nor sheriff, have there any jurisdiction; nor

any man but the abbot alone, and whom he may set thereto. And I give to Christ and St. Peter, and that too

with the advice of Bishop Athelwold, these lands;  that is, Barrow, Warmington, Ashton, Kettering,

Castor, Eylesworth, Walton, Witherington, Eye, Thorp, and a minster at Stamford. These lands and al the

others that belong to the minster I bequeath clear; that is, with sack and sock, toll and team, and infangthief;

these privileges and all others bequeath I clear to Christ and St. Peter. And I give the two parts of

Whittleseymere, with waters and with wears and fens; and so through Meerlade along to the water that is

called Nen; and so eastward to Kingsdelf. And I will that there be a market in the town itself, and that no

other be betwixt Stamford and Huntingdon. And I will that thus be given the toll;  first, from

Whittleseymere to the king's toll of Normancross hundred; then backward again from Whittleseymere

through Meerlade along to the Nen, and as that river runs to Crowland; and from Crowland to Must, and from

Must to Kingsdelf and to Whittleseymere. And I will that all the freedom, and all the privileges, that my

predecessors gave, should remain; and I write and confirm this with the roodtoken of Christ." (+)  Then

answered Dunstan, the Archbishop of Canterbury, and said: "I grant, that all the things that here are given and

spoken, and all the things that thy predecessors and mine have given, shall remain firm; and whosoever

breaketh it, then give I him God's curse, and that of all saints, and of all hooded heads, and mine, unless he

come to repentance. And I give expressly to St. Peter my masshackle, and my stole, and my reef, to serve

Christ." "I Oswald, Archbishop of York, confirm all these words through the holy rood on which Christ was

crucified." (+) "I Bishop Athelwold bless all that maintain this, and I excommunicate all that break it, unless

they come to repentance."  Here was Bishop Ellstan, Bishop Athulf, and Abbot Eskwy, and Abbot Osgar,

and Abbot Ethelgar, and Alderman Elfere; .Alderman Ethelwin, Britnoth and Oslac aldermen, and many

other rich men; and all confirmed it and subscribed it with the cross of Christ. (+) This was done in the year

after our Lord's Nativity 972, the sixteenth year of this king. Then bought the Abbot Aldulf lands rich and

many, and much endowed the minster withal; and was there until Oswald, Archbishop of York, was dead;

and then he was chosen to be archbishop. Soon after another abbot was chosen of the same monastery, whose

name was Kenulf, who was afterwards Bishop of Winchester. He first made the wall about the minster, and

gave it then the name of Peterborough, which before was Medhamsted. He was there till he was appointed

Bishop of Winchester, when another abbot was chosen of the same monastery, whose name was Elfsy, who

continued abbot fifty winters afterwards. It was he who took up St. Kyneburga and St. Kyneswitha, that lay at

Castor, and St. Tibba, that lay at Ryhall; and brought them to Peterborough, and offered them all to St. Peter

in one day, and preserved them all the while he was there.

((A.D. 963. This year, by King Edgar, St. Ethelwold was chosen to the bishoprick at Winchester. And the

Archbishop of Canterbury, St. Dunstan, consecrated him bishop on the first Sunday of Advent; that was on

the third before the kalends of December.))


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part III 50



Top




Page No 53


A.D. 964. This year drove King Edgar the priests of Winchester out of the old minster, and also out of the

new minster; and from Chertsey; and from Milton; and replaced them with monks. And he appointed

Ethelgar abbot to the new minster, and Ordbert to Chertsey, and Cyneward to Milton.

((A.D. 964. This year were the canons driven out of the Old minster by King Edgar, and also from the

Newminster, and from Chertsey and from Milton; and he appointed thereto monks and abbots: to the

Newminster Ethelgar, to Chertsey Ordbert, to Milton Cyneward.))

A.D. 965. This year King Edgar took Elfrida for his queen, who was daughter of Alderman Ordgar.

A.D. 966. This year Thored, the son of Gunner, plundered Westmorland; and the same year Oslac took to the

aldermanship.

A.D. 969. This year King Edgar ordered all Thanetland to be plundered.

A.D. 970. This year died Archbishop Oskytel; who was first consecrated diocesan bishop at Dorchester, and

afterwards it was by the consent of King Edred and all his council that he was consecrated Archbishop of

York. He was bishop two and twenty winters; and he died on Alhallowmas night, ten nights before

Martinmas, at Thame. Abbot Thurkytel, his relative, carried the bishop's body to Bedford, because he was the

abbot there at that time.

A.D. 971. This year died Edmund Atheling, and his body lies at Rumsey.

((A.D. 972. This year Edgar the etheling was consecrated king at Bath, on Pentecost's massday, on the fifth

before the ides of May, the thirteenth year since he had obtained the kingdom; and he was then one less than

thirty years of age. And soon after that, the king led all his shipforces to Chester; and there came to meet

him six kings, and they all plighted their troth to him, that they would be his fellowworkers by sea and by

land.))

A.D. 973. Here was Edgar, of Angles lord, with courtly pomp hallow'd to king at Akemancester, the ancient

city; whose modern sons, dwelling therein, have named her BATH. Much bliss was there by all enjoyed on

that happy day, named Pentecost by men below. A crowd of priests, a throng of monks, I understand, in

counsel sage, were gather'd there. Then were agone ten hundred winters of number'd years from the birth of

Christ, the lofty king, guardian of light, save that thereto there yet was left of wintertale, as writings say,

seven and twenty. So near had run of the lord of triumphs a thousand years, when this was done. Nine and

twenty hard winters there of irksome deeds had Edmund's son seen in the world, when this took place, and on

the thirtieth was hallow'd king. (43) Soon after this the king led all his marine force to Chester; and there

came to meet him six kings; and they all covenanted with him, that they would be his allies by sea and by

land.

A.D. 975. Here ended his earthly dreams Edgar, of Angles king; chose him other light, serene and lovely,

spurning this frail abode, a life that mortals here call lean he quitted with disdain. July the month, by all

agreed in this our land, whoever were in chronic lore correctly taught; the day the eighth, when Edgar young,

rewarder of heroes, his life  his throne  resigned. Edward his son, unwaxen child, of earls the prince,

succeeded then to England's throne. Of royal race ten nights before departed hence Cyneward the good 

prelate of manners mild. Well known to me in Mercia then, how low on earth God's glory fell on every side:

chaced from the land, his servants fled,  their wisdom scorned; much grief to him whose bosom glow'd

with fervent love of great Creation's Lord! Neglected then the God of wonders, victor of victors, monarch of

heaven,  his laws by man transgressed! Then too was driv'n Oslac beloved an exile far from his native land

over the rolling waves,  over the ganetbath, over the waterthrong, the abode of the whale,  fairhair'd

hero, wise and eloquent, of home bereft! Then too was seen, high in the heavens, the star on his station, that


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part III 51



Top




Page No 54


far and wide wise men call  lovers of truth and heav'nly lore  "cometa" by name. Widely was spread

God's vengeance then throughout the land, and famine scour'd the hills. May heaven's guardian, the glory of

angels, avert these ills, and give us bliss again; that bliss to all abundance yields from earth's choice fruits,

throughout this happy isle. (45)

((A.D. 975. The eighth before the ides of July. Here Edgar died, ruler of Angles, WestSaxons' joy, and

Mercians' protector. Known was it widely throughout many nations. "Thaet" offspring of Edmund, o'er the

ganet'sbath, honoured far, Kings him widely bowed to the king, as was his due by kind. No fleet was so

daring, nor army so strong, that 'mid the English nation took from him aught, the while that the noble king

ruled on his throne. And this year Edward, Edgar's son, succeeded to the kingdom; and then soon, in the same

year, during harvest, appeared "cometa" the star; and then came in the following year a very great famine,

and very manifold commotions among the English people. In his days, for his youth, God's gainsayers God's

law broke; Eldfere, ealdorman, and others many; and rule monastic quashed, and minsters dissolved, and

monks drove out, and God's servants put down, whom Edgar, king, ordered erewhile the holy bishop

Ethelwold to stablish; and widows they plundered, many times and oft: and many unrighteousnesses, and evil

unjustdeeds arose up afterwards: and ever after that it greatly grew in evil. And at that rime, also, was Oslac

the great earl banished from England.))

A.D. 976. This year was the great famine in England.

A.D. 977. This year was that great council at Kirtlington, (46) after Easter; and there died Bishop Sideman a

sudden death, on the eleventh day before the calends of May. He was Bishop of Devonshire; and he wished

that his restingplace should be at Crediton, his episcopal residence; but King Edward and Archbishop

Dunstan ordered men to carry him to St. Mary's minster that is at Abingdon. And they did so; and he is

moreover honourably buried on the north side in St. Paul's porch.

A.D. 978. This year all the oldest counsellors of England fell at Calne from an upper floor; but the holy

Archbishop Dunstan stood alone upon a beam. Some were dreadfully bruised: and some did not escape with

life. This year was King Edward slain, at eventide, at Corfegate, on the fifteenth day before the calends of

April. And he was buried at Wareham without any royal honour. No worse deed than this was ever done by

the English nation since they first sought the land of Britain. Men murdered him but God has magnified him.

He was in life an earthly king  he is now after death a heavenly saint. Him would not his earthly relatives

avenge  but his heavenly father has avenged him amply. The earthly homicides would wipe out his

memory from the earth  but the avenger above has spread his memory abroad in heaven and in earth.

Those, Who would not before bow to his living body, now bow on their knees to His dead bones. Now we

may conclude, that the wisdom of men, and their meditations, and their counsels, are as nought against the

appointment of God. In this same year succeeded Ethelred Etheling, his brother, to the government; and he

was afterwards very readily, and with great joy to the counsellors of England, consecrated king at Kingston.

In the same year also died Alfwold, who was Bishop of Dorsetshire, and whose body lieth in the minster at

Sherborn.

A.D. 979. In this year was Ethelred consecrated king, on the Sunday fortnight after Easter, at Kingston. And

there were at his consecration two archbishops, and ten diocesan bishops. This same year was seen a bloody

welkin ofttimes in the likeness of fire; and that was most apparent at midnight, and so in misty beams was

shown; but when it began to dawn, then it glided away.

((A.D. 979. This year was King Edward slain at eventide, at Corfegate, on the fifteenth before the kalends

of April, and then was he buried at Wareham, without any kind of kingly honours. There has not been 'mid

Angles a worse deed done than this was, since they first Britainland sought. Men him murdered, but God

him glorified. He was in life an earthly king; he is now after death a heavenly saint. Him would not his

earthly kinsmen avenge, but him hath his heavenly Father greatly avenged. The earthly murderers would his


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part III 52



Top




Page No 55


memory on earth blot out, but the lofty Avenger hath his memory in the heavens and on earth widespread.

They who would not erewhile to his living body bow down, they now humbly on knees bend to his dead

bones. Now we may understand that men's wisdom and their devices, and their councils, are like nought

'gainst God's resolves. This year Ethelred succeeded to the kingdom; and he was very quickly after that, with

much joy of the English witan, consecrated king at Kingston.))

A.D. 980. In this year was Ethelgar consecrated bishop, on the sixth day before the nones of May, to the

bishopric of Selsey; and in the same year was Southampton plundered by a piratearmy, and most of the

population slain or imprisoned. And the same year was the Isle of Thanet overrun, and the county of Chester

was plundered by the piratearmy of the North. In this year Alderman Alfere fetched the body of the holy

King Edward at Wareham, and carried him with great solemnity to Shaftsbury.

A.D. 981. In this year was St. Petroc'sstow plundered; and in the same year was much harm done

everywhere by the seacoast, both upon Devonshire and Wales. And in the same year died Elfstan, Bishop of

Wiltshire; and his body lieth in the minster at Abingdon; and Wulfgar then succeeded to the bishopric. The

same year died Womare, Abbot of Ghent.

((A.D. 981. This year came first the seven ships, and ravaged Southampton.))

A.D. 982. In this year came up in Dorsetshire three ships of the pirates, and plundered in Portland. The same

year London was burned. In the same year also died two aldermen, Ethelmer in Hampshire, and Edwin in

Sussex. Ethelmer's body lieth in Winchester, at Newminster, and Edwin's in the minster at Abingdon. The

same year died two abbesses in Dorsetshire; Herelufa at Shaftsbury, and Wulfwina at Wareham. The same

year went Otho, emperor of the Romans, into Greece; and there met he a great army of the Saracens, who

came up from the sea, and would have proceeded forthwith to plunder the Christian folk; but the emperor

fought with them. And there was much slaughter made on either side, but the emperor gained the field of

battle. He was there, however, much harassed, ere he returned thence; and as he went homeward, his brother's

son died, who was also called Otho; and he was the son of Leodulf Atheling. This Leodulf was the son of

Otho the Elder and of the daughter of King Edward.

A.D. 983. This year died Alderman Alfere, and Alfric succeeded to the same eldership; and Pope Benedict

also died.

A.D. 984. This year died the benevolent Bishop of Winchester, Athelwold, father of monks; and the

consecration of the following bishop, Elfheah, who by another name was called Godwin, was on the

fourteenth day before the calends of November; and he took his seat on the episcopal bench on the massday

of the two apostles Simon and Jude, at Winchester.

A.D. 985. This year was Alderman Alfric driven out of the land; and in the same year was Edwin consecrated

abbot of the minster at Abingdon.

A.D. 986. This year the king invaded the bishopric of Rochester; and this year came first the great murrain of

cattle in England.

A.D. 987. This year was the port of Watchet plundered.

A.D. 988. This year was Goda, the thane of Devonshire, slain; and a great number with him: and Dunstan, the

holy archbishop, departed this life, and sought a heavenly one. Bishop Ethelgar succeeded him in the

archbishopric; but he lived only a little while after, namely, one year and three months.


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part III 53



Top




Page No 56


A.D. 989. This year died Abbot Edwin, and Abbot Wulfgar succeeded to the abbacy. Siric was this year

invested archbishop, and went afterwards to Rome after his pall.

A.D. 991. This year was Ipswich plundered; and very soon afterwards was Alderman Britnoth (47) slain at

Maidon. In this same year it was resolved that tribute should be given, for the first time, to the Danes, for the

great terror they occasioned by the seacoast. That was first 10,000 pounds. The first who advised this

measure was Archbishop Siric.

A.D. 992. This year the blessed Archbishop Oswald departed this life, and sought a heavenly one; and in the

same year died Alderman Ethelwin. Then the king and all his council resolved, that all the ships that were of

any account should be gathered together at London; and the king committed the lead of the land force to

Alderman Elfric, and Earl Thorod, and Bishop Elfstan, and Bishop Escwy; that they should try if they could

anywhere without entrap the enemy. Then sent Alderman Elfric, and gave warning to the enemy; and on the

night preceding the day of battle he sculked away from the army, to his great disgrace. The enemy then

escaped; except the crew of one ship, who were slain on the spot. Then met the enemy the ships from

EastAnglia, and from London; and there a great slaughter was made, and they took the ship in which was

the alderman, all armed and rigged. Then, after the death of Archbishop Oswald, succeeded Aldulf, Abbot of

Peterborough, to the sees of York and of Worcester; and Kenulf to the abbacy of Peterborough.

((A.D. 992. This year Oswald the blessed archbishop died, and Abbot Eadulf succeeded to York and to

Worcester. And this year the king and all his witan decreed that all the ships which were worth anything

should be gathered together at London, in order that they might try if they could anywhere betrap the army

from without. But Aelfric the ealdorman, one of those in whom the king had most confidence, directed the

army to be warned; and in the night, as they should on the morrow have joined battle, the selfsame Aelfric

fled from the forces; and then the army escaped.))

A.D. 993. This year came Anlaf with three and ninety ships to Staines, which he plundered without, and went

thence to Sandwich. Thence to Ipswich, which he laid waste; and so to Maidon, where Alderman Britnoth

came against him with his force, and fought with him; and there they slew the alderman, and gained the field

of battle; whereupon peace was made with him, and the king received him afterwards at episcopal hands by

the advice of Siric, Bishop of Canterbury, and Elfeah of Winchester. This year was Bamborough destroyed,

and much spoil was there taken. Afterwards came the army to the mouth of the Humber; and there did much

evil both in Lindsey and in Northumbria. Then was collected a great force; but when the armies were to

engage, then the generals first commenced a flight; namely, Frene and Godwin and Frithgist. In this same

year the king ordered Elfgar, son of Alderman Elfric, to be punished with blindness.

((A.D. 993. In this year came Olave with ninetythree ships to Staines, and ravaged there about, and then

went thence to Sandwich, and so thence to Ipswich, and that all overran; and so to Maldon. And there

Britnoth the ealdorman came against them with his forces, and fought against them: and they there slew the

ealdorman, and had possession of the place of carnage. And after that peace was made with them; and him

(Anlaf) the king afterwards received at the bishop's hands, through the instruction of Siric, bishop of the

Kentishmen, and of Aelphege of Winchester.))

A.D. 994. This year died Archbishop Siric: and Elfric, Bishop of Wiltshire, was chosen on Easterday, at

Amesbury, by King Ethelred and all his council. This year came Anlaf and Sweyne to London, on the

Nativity of St. Mary, with four and ninetyships. And they closely besieged the city, and would fain have set

it on fire; but they sustained more harm and evil than they ever supposed that any citizens could inflict on

them. The holy mother of God on that day in her mercy considered the citizens, and ridded them of their

enemies. Thence they advanced, and wrought the greatest evil that ever any army could do, in burning and

plundering and manslaughter, not only on the seacoast in Essex, but in Kent and in Sussex and in

Hampshire. Next they took horse, and rode as wide as they would, and committed unspeakable evil. Then


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part III 54



Top




Page No 57


resolved the king and his council to send to them, and offer them tribute and provision, on condition that they

desisted from plunder. The terms they accepted; and the whole army came to Southampton, and there fixed

their winter quarters; where they were fed by all the subjects of the West Saxon kingdom. And they gave

them 16,000 pounds in money. Then sent the king; after King Anlaf Bishop Elfeah and Alderman Ethelwerd;

(48) and, hostages being left with the ships, they led Anlaf with great pomp to the king at Andover. And King

Ethelred received him at episcopal hands, and honoured him with royal presents. In return Anlaf promised, as

he also performed, that he never again would come in a hostile manner to England.

A.D. 995. This year appeared the cometstar.

A.D. 996. This year was Elfric consecrated archbishop at Christ church. (49)

A.D. 997. This year went the army about Devonshire into Severn mouth, and equally plundered the people

of Cornwall, NorthWales, (50) and Devon. Then went they up at Watchet, and there much evil wrought in

burning and manslaughter. Afterwards they coasted back about Penwithstert on the south side, and, turning

into the mouth of the Tamer, went up till they came to Liddyford, burning and slaying everything that they

met. Moreover, Ordulf's minster at Tavistock they burned to the ground, and brought to their ships

incalculable plunder. This year Archbishop Elfric went to Rome after his staff.

A.D. 998. This year coasted the army back eastward into the mouth of the Frome, and went up everywhere,

as widely as they would, into Dorsetshire. Often was an army collected against them; but, as soon as they

were about to come together, then were they ever through something or other put to flight, and their enemies

always in the end had the victory. Another time they lay in the Isle of Wight, and fed themselves meanwhile

from Hampshire and Sussex.

A.D. 999. This year came the army about again into the Thames, and went up thence along the Medway to

Rochester; where the Kentish army came against them, and encountered them in a close engagement; but,

alas! they too soon yielded and fled; because they had not the aid that they should have had. The Danes

therefore occupied the field of battle, and, taking horse, they rode as wide as they would, spoiling and

overrunning nearly all WestKent. Then the king with his council determined to proceed against them with

sea and land forces; but as soon as the ships were ready, then arose delay from day to day, which harassed the

miserable crew that lay on board; so that, always, the forwarder it should have been, the later it was, from one

time to another;  they still suffered the army of their enemies to increase;  the Danes continually

retreated from the seacoast; and they continually pursued them in vain. Thus in the end these expeditions

both by sea and land served no other purpose but to vex the people, to waste their treasure, and to strengthen

their enemies. "

A.D. 1000. This year the king went into Cumberland, and nearly laid waste the whole of it with his army,

whilst his navy sailed about Chester with the design of cooperating with his land forces; but, finding it

impracticable, they ravaged Anglesey. The hostile fleet was this summer turned towards the kingdom of

Richard.

A.D. 1001. This year there was great commotion in England in consequence of an invasion by the Danes,

who spread terror and devastation wheresoever they went, plundering and burning and desolating the country

with such rapidity, that they advanced in one march as far as the town of Alton; where the people of

Hampshire came against them, and fought with them. There was slain Ethelwerd, highsteward of the king,

and Leofric of Whitchurch, and Leofwin, highsteward of the king, and Wulfhere, a bishop's thane, and

Godwin of Worthy, son of Bishop Elfsy; and of all the men who were engaged with them eightyone. Of the

Danes there was slain a much greater number, though they remained in possession of the field of battle.

Thence they proceeded westward, until they came into Devonshire; where Paley came to meet them with the

ships which he was able to collect; for he had shaken off his allegiance to King Ethelred, against all the vows


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part III 55



Top




Page No 58


of truth and fidelity which he had given him, as well as the presents which the king had bestowed on him in

houses and gold and silver. And they burned Teignton, and also many other goodly towns that we cannot

name; and then peace was there concluded with them. And they proceeded thence towards Exmouth, so that

they marched at once till they came to Pinhoo; where Cole, high steward of the king, and Edsy, reve of the

king, came against them with the army that they could collect. But they were there put to flight, and there

were many slain, and the Danes had possession of the field of battle. And the next morning they burned the

village of Pinhoo, and of Clist, and also many goodly towns that we cannot name. Then they returned

eastward again, till they came to the Isle of Wight. The next morning they burned the town of Waltham, and

many other small towns; soon after which the people treated with them, and they made peace.

((A.D. 1001. This year the army came to Exmouth, and then went up to the town, and there continued

fighting stoutly; but they were very strenuously resisted. Then went they through the land, and did all as was

their wont; destroyed and burnt. Then was collected a vast force of the people of Devon and of the people of

Somerset, and they then came together at Pen. And so soon as they joined battle, then the people gave way:

and there they made great slaughter, and then they rode over the land, and their last incursion was ever worse

than the one before: and then they brought much booty with them to their ships. And thence they went into

the Isle of Wight, and there they roved about, even as they themselves would, and nothing withstood them:

nor any fleet by sea durst meet them; nor land force either, went they ever so far up. Then was it in every

wise a heavy time, because they never ceased from their evil doings.))

A.D. 1002. This year the king and his council agreed that tribute should be given to the fleet, and peace made

with them, with the provision that they should desist from their mischief. Then sent the king to the fleet

Alderman Leofsy, who at the king's word and his council made peace with them, on condition that they

received food and tribute; which they accepted, and a tribute was paid of 24,000 pounds. In the meantime

Alderman Leofsy slew Eafy, highsteward of the king; and the king banished him from the land. Then, in the

same Lent, came the Lady Elfgive Emma, Richard's daughter, to this land. And in the same summer died

Archbishop Eadulf; and also, in the same year the king gave an order to slay all the Danes that were in

England. This was accordingly done on the massday of St. Brice; because it was told the king, that they

would beshrew him of his life, and afterwards all his council, and then have his kingdom without any

resistance.

A.D. 1003. This year was Exeter demolished, through the French churl Hugh, whom the lady had appointed

her steward there. And the army destroyed the town withal, and took there much spoil. In the same year came

the army up into Wiltshire. Then was collected a very great force, from Wiltshire and from Hampshire; which

was soon ready on their march against the enemy: and Alderman Elfric should have led them on; but he

brought forth his old tricks, and as soon as they were so near, that either army looked on the other, then he

pretended sickness, and began to retch, saying he was sick; and so betrayed the people that he should have

led: as it is said, "When the leader is sick the whole army is hindered." When Sweyne saw that they were not

ready, and that they all retreated, then led he his army into Wilton; and they plundered and burned the town.

Then went he to Sarum; and thence back to the sea, where he knew his ships were.

A.D. 1004. This year came Sweyne with his fleet to Norwich, plundering and burning the whole town. Then

Ulfkytel agreed with the council in EastAnglia, that it were better to purchase peace with the enemy, ere

they did too much harm on the land; for that they had come unawares, and he had not had time to gather his

force. Then, under the truce that should have been between them, stole the army up from their ships, and bent

their course to Thetford. When Ulfkytel understood that, then sent he an order to hew the ships in pieces; but

they frustrated his design. Then he gathered his forces, as secretly as he could. The enemy came to Thetford

within three weeks after they had plundered Norwich; and, remaining there one night, they spoiled and

burned the town; but, in the morning, as they were proceeding to their ships, came Ulfkytel with his army,

and said that they must there come to close quarters. And, accordingly, the two armies met together; and

much slaughter was made on both sides. There were many of the veterans of the EastAngles slain; but, if the


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part III 56



Top




Page No 59


main army had been there, the enemy had never returned to their ships. As they said themselves, that they

never met with worse handplay in England than Ulfkytel brought them.

A.D. 1005. This year died Archbishop Elfric; and Bishop Elfeah succeeded him in the archbishopric. This

year was the great famine in England so severe that no man ere remembered such. The fleet this year went

from this land to Denmark, and took but a short respite, before they came again.

A.D. 1006. This year Elfeah was consecrated Archbishop; Bishop Britwald succeeded to the see of Wiltshire;

Wulfgeat was deprived of all his property; (51) Wulfeah and Ufgeat were deprived of sight; Alderman Elfelm

was slain; and Bishop Kenulf (52) departed this life. Then, over midsummer, came the Danish fleet to

Sandwich, and did as they were wont; they barrowed and burned and slew as they went. Then the king

ordered out all the population from Wessex and from Mercia; and they lay out all the harvest under arms

against the enemy; but it availed nothing more than it had often done before. For all this the enemy went

wheresoever they would; and the expedition did the people more harm than either any internal or external

force could do. When winter approached, then went the army home; and the enemy retired after Martinmas to

their quarters in the Isle of Wight, and provided themselves everywhere there with what they wanted. Then,

about midwinter, they went to their ready farm, throughout Hampshire into Berkshire, to Reading. And they

did according to their custom,  they lighted their campbeacons as they advanced. Thence they marched to

Wallingford, which they entirely destroyed, and passed one night at Cholsey. They then turned along

Ashdown to Cuckamsleyhill, and there awaited better cheer; for it was often said, that if they sought

Cuckamsley, they would never get to the sea. But they went another way homeward. Then was their army

collected at Kennet; and they came to battle there, and soon put the English force to flight; and afterwards

carried their spoil to the sea. There might the people of Winchester see the rank and iniquitous foe, as they

passed by their gates to the sea, fetching their meat and plunder over an extent of fifty miles from sea. Then

was the king gone over the Thames into Shropshire; and there he fixed his abode during midwinter.

Meanwhile, so great was the fear of the enemy, that no man could think or devise how to drive them from the

land, or hold this territory against them; for they had terribly marked each shire in Wessex with fire and

devastation. Then the king began to consult seriously with his council, what they all thought most advisable

for defending this land, ere it was utterly undone. Then advised the king and his council for the advantage of

all the nation, though they were all loth to do it, that they needs must bribe the enemy with a tribute. The king

then sent to the army, and ordered it to be made known to them, that his desire was, that there should be

peace between them, and that tribute and provision should be given them. And they accepted the terms; and

they were provisioned throughout England.

((A.D. 1006. This year Elphege was consecrated archbishop [of Canterbury].))

A.D. 1007. In this year was the tribute paid to the hostile army; that was, 30,000 pounds. In this year also was

Edric appointed alderman over all the kingdom of the Mercians. This year went Bishop Elfeah to Rome after

his pall.

A.D. 1008. This year bade the king that men should speedily build ships over all England; that is, a man

possessed of three hundred and ten hides to provide on galley or skiff; and a man possessed of eight hides

only, to find a helmet and breastplate (53).

A.D. 1009. This year were the ships ready, that we before spoke about; and there were so many of them as

never were in England before, in any king's days, as books tell us. And they were all transported together to

Sandwich; that they should lie there, and defend this land against any outforce. But we have not yet had the

prosperity and the honour, that the naval armament should be useful to this land, any more than it often

before was. It was at this same time, or a little earlier, that Brihtric, brother of Alderman Edric, bewrayed

Wulnoth, the SouthSaxon knight, father of Earl Godwin, to the king; and he went into exile, and enticed the

navy, till he had with him twenty ships; with which he plundered everywhere by the south coast, and wrought


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part III 57



Top




Page No 60


every kind of mischief. When it was told the navy that they might easily seize him, if they would look about

them, then took Brihtric with him eighty ships; and thought that he should acquire for himself much

reputation, by getting Wulnoth into his hands alive or dead. But, whilst they were proceeding thitherward,

there came such a wind against them, as no man remembered before; which beat and tossed the ships, and

drove them aground; whereupon Wulnoth soon came, and burned them. When this was known to the

remaining ships, where the king was, how the others fared, it was then as if all were lost. The king went

home, with the aldermen and the nobility; and thus lightly did they forsake the ships; whilst the men that

were in them rowed them back to London. Thus lightly did they suffer the labour of all the people to be in

vain; nor was the terror lessened, as all England hoped. When this naval expedition was thus ended, then

came, soon after Lammas, the formidable army of the enemy, called Thurkill's army, to Sandwich; and soon

they bent their march to Canterbury; which city they would quickly have stormed, had they not rather desired

peace; and all the men of EastKent made peace with the army, and gave them 3,000 pounds for security.

The army soon after that went about till they came to the Isle of Wight; and everywhere in Sussex, and in

Hampshire, and also in Berkshire, they plundered and burned, as THEIR CUSTOM IS. (54) Then ordered the

king to summon out all the population, that men might hold firm against them on every side; but nevertheless

they marched as they pleased. On one occasion the king had begun his march before them, as they proceeded

to their ships, and all the people were ready to fall upon them; but the plan was then frustrated through

Alderman Edric, AS IT EVER IS STILL. Then after Martinmas they went back again to Kent, and chose

their winterquarters on the Thames; obtaining their provisions from Essex, and from the shires that were

next, on both sides of the Thames. And oft they fought against the city of London; but glory be to God, that it

yet standeth firm: and they ever there met with ill fare. Then after midwinter took they an excursion up

through Chiltern, (55) and so to Oxford; which city they burned, and plundered on both sides of the Thames

to their ships. Being forewarned that there was an army gathered against them at London, they went over at

Staines; and thus were they in motion all the winter, and in spring, appeared again in Kent, and repaired their

ships.

A.D. 1010. This year came the aforesaid army, after Easter, into East Anglia; and went up at Ipswich,

marching continually till they came where they understood Ulfcytel was with his army. This was on the day

called the first of the Ascension of our Lord. The EastAngles soon fled. Cambridgeshire stood firm against

them. There was slain Athelstan, the king's relative, and Oswy, and his son, and Wulfric, son of Leofwin, and

Edwy, brother of Efy, and many other good thanes, and a multitude of the people. Thurkytel Myrehead first

began the flight; and the Danes remained masters of the field of slaughter. There were they horsed; and

afterwards took possession of EastAnglia, where they plundered and burned three months; and then

proceeded further into the wild fens, slaying both men and cattle, and burning throughout the fens. Thetford

also they burned, and Cambridge; and afterwards went back southward into the Thames; and the horsemen

rode towards the ships. Then went they westward into Oxfordshire, and thence to Buckinghamshire, and so

along the Ouse till they came to Bedford, and so forth to Temsford, always burning as they went. Then

returned they to their ships with their spoil, which they apportioned to the ships. When the king's army should

have gone out to meet them as they went up, then went they home; and when they were in the east, then was

the army detained in the west; and when they were in the south, then was the army in the north. Then all the

privy council were summoned before the king, to consult how they might defend this country. But, whatever

was advised, it stood not a month; and at length there was not a chief that would collect an army, but each

fled as he could: no shire, moreover, would stand by another. Before the feastday of St. Andrew came the

enemy to Northampton, and soon burned the town, and took as much spoil thereabout as they would; and

then returned over the Thames into Wessex, and so by Canningsmarsh, burning all the way. When they had

gone as far as they would, then came they by midwinter to their ships.

A.D. 1011. This year sent the king and his council to the army, and desired peace; promising them both

tribute and provisions, on condition that they ceased from plunder. They had now overrun EastAnglia [1],

and Essex [2], and Middlesex [3], and Oxfordshire [4], and Cambridgeshire [5], and Hertfordshire [6], and

Buckinghamshire [7], and Bedfordshire [8], and half of Huntingdonshire [9], and much of Northamptonshire


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part III 58



Top




Page No 61


[10]; and, to the south of the Thames, all Kent, and Sussex, and Hastings, and Surrey, and Berkshire, and

Hampshire, and much of Wiltshire. All these disasters befel us through bad counsels; that they would not

offer tribute in time, or fight with them; but, when they had done most mischief, then entered they into peace

and amity with them. And not the less for all this peace, and amity, and tribute, they went everywhere in

troops; plundering, and spoiling, and slaying our miserable people. In this year, between the Nativity of St.

Mary and Michaelmas, they beset Canterbury, and entered therein through treachery; for Elfmar delivered the

city to them, whose life Archbishop Elfeah formerly saved. And there they seized Archbishop Elfeah, and

Elfward the king's steward, and Abbess Leofruna, (56) and Bishop Godwin; and Abbot Elfmar they suffered

to go away. And they took therein all the men, and husbands, and wives; and it was impossible for any man

to say how many they were; and in the city they continued afterwards as long as they would. And, when they

had surveyed all the city, they then returned to their ships, and led the archbishop with them. Then was a

captive he who before was of England head and Christendom;  there might be seen

great wretchedness, where oft before great bliss was seen, in the fated city, whence first to us came

Christendom, and bliss 'fore God and 'fore the world. And the archbishop they kept with them until the time

when they martyred him.

A.D. 1012. This year came Alderman Edric, and all the oldest counsellors of England, clerk and laity, to

London before Easter, which was then on the ides of April; and there they abode, over Easter, until all the

tribute was paid, which was 48,000 pounds. Then on the Saturday was the army much stirred against the

bishop; because he would not promise them any fee, and forbade that any man should give anything for him.

They were also much drunken; for there was wine brought them from the south. Then took they the bishop,

and led him to their hustings, on the eve of the Sunday after Easter, which was the thirteenth before the

calends of May; and there they then shamefully killed him. They overwhelmed him with bones and horns of

oxen; and one of them smote him with an axeiron on the head; so that he sunk downwards with the blow;

and his holy blood fell on the earth, whilst his sacred soul was sent to the realm of God. The corpse in the

morning was carried to London; and the bishops, Ednoth and Elfhun, and the citizens, received him with all

honour, and buried him in St. Paul's minster; where God now showeth this holy martyr's miracles. When the

tribute was paid, and the peace oaths were sworn, then dispersed the army as widely as it was before

collected. Then submitted to the king five and forty of the ships of the enemy; and promised him, that they

would defend this land, and he should feed and clothe them.

A.D. 1013. The year after that Archbishop Elfeah was martyred, the king appointed Lifing to the

archiepiscopal see of Canterbury. And in the same year, before the month August, came King Sweyne with

his fleet to Sandwich; and very soon went about EastAnglia into the Humbermouth, and so upward along

the Trent, until he came to Gainsborough. Then soon submitted to him Earl Utred, and all the Northumbrians,

and all the people of Lindsey, and afterwards the people of the Five Boroughs, and soon after all the army to

the north of Watlingstreet; and hostages were given him from each shire. When he understood that all the

people were subject to him, then ordered he that his army should have provision and horses; and he then went

southward with his main army, committing his ships and the hostages to his son Knute. And after he came

over Watlingstreet, they wrought the greatest mischief that any army could do. Then he went to Oxford; and

the population soon submitted, and gave hostages; thence to Winchester, where they did the same. Thence

went they eastward to London; and many of the party sunk in the Thames, because they kept not to any

bridge. When he came to the city, the population would not submit; but held their ground in full fight against

him, because therein was King Ethelred, and Thurkill with him. Then went King Sweyne thence to

Wallingford; and so over Thames westward to Bath, where he abode with his army. Thither came Alderman

Ethelmar, and all the western thanes with him, and all submitted to Sweyne, and gave hostages. When he had

thus settled all, then went he northward to his ships; and all the population fully received him, and considered

him full king. The population of London also after this submitted to him, and gave hostages; because they

dreaded that he would undo them. Then bade Sweyne full tribute and forage for his army during the winter;

and Thurkill bade the same for the army that lay at Greenwich: besides this, they plundered as oft as they


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part III 59



Top




Page No 62


would. And when this nation could neither resist in the south nor in the north, King Ethelred abode some

while with the fleet that lay in the Thames; and the lady (57) went afterwards over sea to her brother Richard,

accompanied by Elfsy, Abbot of Peterborough. The king sent Bishop Elfun with the ethelings, Edward and

Alfred, over sea; that he might instruct them. Then went the king from the fleet, about midwinter, to the Isle

of Wight; and there abode for the season; after which he went over sea to Richard, with whom he abode till

the time when Sweyne died. Whilst the lady was with her brother beyond sea, Elfsy, Abbot of Peterborough,

who was there with her, went to the abbey called Boneval, where St. Florentine's body lay; and there found a

miserable place, a miserable abbot, and miserable monks: because they had been plundered. There he bought

of the abbot, and of the monks, the body of St. Florentine, all but the head, for 500 pounds; which, on his

return home, he offered to Christ and St. Peter.

A.D. 1014. This year King Sweyne ended his days at Candlemas, the third day before the nones of February;

and the same year Elfwy, Bishop of York, was consecrated in London, on the festival of St. Juliana. The fleet

all chose Knute for king; whereupon advised all the counsellors of England, clergy and laity, that they should

send after King Ethelred; saying, that no sovereign was dearer to them than their natural lord, if he would

govern them better than he did before. Then sent the king hither his son Edward, with his messengers; who

had orders to greet all his people, saying that he would be their faithful lord  would better each of those

things that they disliked  and that each of the things should be forgiven which had been either done or said

against him; provided they all unanimously, without treachery, turned to him. Then was full friendship

established, in word and in deed and in compact, on either side. And every Danish king they proclaimed an

outlaw for ever from England. Then came King Ethelred home, in Lent, to his own people; and he was gladly

received by them all. Meanwhile, after the death of Sweyne, sat Knute with his army in Gainsborough until

Easter; and it was agreed between him and the people of Lindsey, that they should supply him with horses,

and afterwards go out all together and plunder. But King Ethelred with his full force came to Lindsey before

they were ready; and they plundered and burned, and slew all the men that they could reach. Knute, the son of

Sweyne, went out with his fleet (so were the wretched people deluded by him), and proceeded southward

until he came to Sandwich. There he landed the hostages that were given to his father, and cut off their hands

and ears and their noses. Besides all these evils, the king ordered a tribute to the army that lay at Greenwich,

of 21,000 pounds. This year, on the eve of St. Michael's day, came the great seaflood, which spread wide

over this land, and ran so far up as it never did before, overwhelming many towns, and an innumerable

multitude of people.

Part IV

A.D. 1015. This year was the great council at Oxford; where Alderman Edric betrayed Sigferth and Morcar,

the eldest thanes belonging to the Seven Towns. He allured them into his bower, where they were shamefully

slain. Then the king took all their possessions, and ordered the widow of Sigferth to be secured, and brought

within Malmsbury. After a little interval, Edmund Etheling went and seized her, against the king's will, and

had her to wife. Then, before the Nativity of St. Mary, went the etheling westnorth into the Five Towns,

(58) and soon plundered all the property of Sigferth and Morcar; and all the people submitted to him. At the

same time came King Knute to Sandwich, and went soon all about Kent into Wessex, until he came to the

mouth of the Frome; and then plundered in Dorset, and in Wiltshire, and in Somerset. King Ethelred,

meanwhile, lay sick at Corsham; and Alderman Edric collected an army there, and Edmund the etheling in

the north. When they came together, the alderman designed to betray Edmund the etheling, but he could not;

whereupon they separated without an engagement, and sheered off from their enemies. Alderman Edric then

seduced forty ships from the king, and submitted to Knute. The WestSaxons also submitted, and gave

hostages, and horsed the army. And he continued there until midwinter.

A.D. 1016. This year came King Knute with a marine force of one hundred and sixty ships, and Alderman

Edric with him, over the Thames into Mercia at Cricklade; whence they proceeded to Warwickshire, during

the middle of the winter, and plundered therein, and burned, and slew all they met. Then began Edmund the


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part IV 60



Top




Page No 63


etheling to gather an army, which, when it was collected, could avail him nothing, unless the king were there

and they had the assistance of the citizens of London. The expedition therefore was frustrated, and each man

betook himself home. After this. an army was again ordered, under full penalties, that every person, however

distant, should go forth; and they sent to the king in London, and besought him to come to meet the army

with the aid that he could collect. When they were all assembled, it succeeded nothing better than it often did

before; and, when it was told the king, that those persons would betray him who ought to assist him, then

forsook he the army, and returned again to London. Then rode Edmund the etheling to Earl Utred in

Northumbria; and every man supposed that they would collect an army King Knute; but they went into

Stafforddhire, and to Shrewsbury, and to Chester; and they plundered on their parts, and Knute on his. He

went out through Buckinghamshire to Bedfordshire; thence to Huntingdonshire, and so into

Northamptonshire along the fens to Stamford. Thence into Lincolnshire. Thence to Nottinghamshire; and so

into Northumbria toward York. When Utred understood this, he ceased from plundering, and hastened

northward, and submitted for need, and all the Northumbrians with him; but, though he gave hostages, he was

nevertheless slain by the advice of Alderman Edric, and Thurkytel, the son of Nafan, with him. After this,

King Knute appointed Eric earl over Northumbria, as Utred was; and then went southward another way, all

by west, till the whole army came, before Easter, to the ships. Meantime Edmund Etheling went to London to

his father: and after Easter went King Knute with all his ships toward London; but it happened that King

Ethelred died ere the ships came. He ended his days on St. George's day; having held his kingdom in much

tribulation and difficulty as long as his life continued. After his decease, all the peers that were in London,

and the citizens, chose Edmund king; who bravely defended his kingdom while his time was. Then came the

ships to Greenwich, about the gangdays, and within a short interval went to London; where they sunk a deep

ditch on the south side, and dragged their ships to the west side of the bridge. Afterwards they trenched the

city without, so that no man could go in or out, and often fought against it: but the citizens bravely withstood

them. King Edmund had ere this gone out, and invaded the WestSaxons, who all submitted to him; and soon

afterward he fought with the enemy at Pen near Gillingham. A second battle he fought, after midsummer, at

Sherston; where much slaughter was made on either side, and the leaders themselves came together in the

fight. Alderman Edric and Aylmer the darling were assisting the army against King Edmund. Then collected

he his force the third time, and went to London, all by north of the Thames, and so out through Clayhanger,

and relieved the citizens, driving the enemy to their ships. It was within two nights after that the king went

over at Brentford; where he fought with the enemy, and put them to flight: but there many of the English

were drowned, from their own carelessness; who went before the main army with a design to plunder. After

this the king went into Wessex, and collected his army; but the enemy soon returned to London, and beset the

city without, and fought strongly against it both by water and land. But the almighty God delivered them. The

enemy went afterward from London with their ships into the Orwell; where they went up and proceeded into

Mercia, slaying and burning whatsoever they overtook, as their custom is; and, having provided themselves

with meat, they drove their ships and their herds into the Medway. Then assembled King Edmund the fourth

time all the English nation, and forded over the Thames at Brentford; whence he proceeded into Kent. The

enemy fled before him with their horses into the Isle of Shepey; and the king slew as many of them as he

could overtake. Alderman Edric then went to meet the king at Aylesford; than which no measure could be

more illadvised. The enemy, meanwhile, returned into Essex, and advanced into Mercia, destroying all that

he overtook. When the king understood that the army was up, then collected he the fifth time all the English

nation, and went behind them, and overtook them in Essex, on the down called Assingdon; where they

fiercely came together. Then did Alderman Edric as he often did before  he first began the flight with the

Maisevethians, and so betrayed his natural lord and all the people of England. There had Knute the victory,

though all England fought against him! There was then slain Bishop Ednoth, and Abbot Wulsy, and

Alderman Elfric, and Alderman Godwin of Lindsey, and Ulfkytel of EastAnglia, and Ethelward, the son of

Alderman Ethelsy (59). And all the nobility of the English nation was there undone! After this fight went

King Knute up with his army into Glocestershire, where he heard say that King Edmund was. Then advised

Alderman Edric, and the counsellors that were there assembled, that the kings should make peace with each

other, and produce hostages. Then both the kings met together at Olney, south of Deerhurst, and became

allies and sworn brothers. There they confirmed their friendship both with pledges and with oaths, and settled


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part IV 61



Top




Page No 64


the pay of the army. With this covenant they parted: King Edmund took to Wessex, and Knute to Mercia and

the northern district. The army then went to their ships with the things they had taken; and the people of

London made peace with them, and purchased their security, whereupon they brought their ships to London,

and provided themselves winterquarters therein. On the feast of St. Andrew died King Edmund; and he is

buried with his grandfather Edgar at Gastonbury. In the same year died Wulfgar, Abbot of Abingdon; and

Ethelsy took to the abbacy.

A.D. 1017. This year King Knute took to the whole government of England, and divided it into four parts:

Wessex for himself, EastAnglia for Thurkyll, Mercia for Edric, Northumbria for Eric. This year also was

Alderman Edric slain at London, and Norman, son of Alderman Leofwin, and Ethelward, son of Ethelmar the

Great, and Britric, son of Elfege of Devonshire. King Knute also banished Edwy etheling, whom he

afterwards ordered to be slain, and Edwy, king of the churls; and before the calends of August the king gave

an order to fetch him the widow of the other king, Ethelred, the daughter of Richard, to wife.

((A.D. 1017. This year Canute was chosen king.))

A.D. 1018. This year was the payment of the tribute over all England; that was, altogether, two and seventy

thousand pounds, besides that which the citizens of London paid; and that was ten thousand five hundred

pounds. The army then went partly to Denmark; and forty ships were left with King Knute. The Danes and

Angles were united at Oxford under Edgar's law; and this year died Abbot Ethelsy at Abingdon, to whom

Ethelwine succeeded.

A.D. 1019. This year went King Knute with nine ships to Denmark, where he abode all the winter; and

Archbishop Elfstan died this year, who was also named Lifing. He was a very upright man both before God

and before the world.

((A.D. 1019. And this winter died Archbishop Elfstan [of Canterbury]: he was named Living; and he was a

very provident man, both as to God and as to the world.))

A.D. 1020. This year came King Knute back to England; and there was at Easter a great council at

Cirencester, where Alderman Ethelward was outlawed, and Edwy, king of the churls. This year went the king

to Assingdon; with Earl Thurkyll, and Archbishop Wulfstan, and other bishops, and also abbots, and many

monks with them; and he ordered to be built there a minster of stone and lime, for the souls of the men who

were there slain, and gave it to his own priest, whose name was Stigand; and they consecrated the minster at

Assingdon. And Ethelnoth the monk, who had been dean at Christ's church, was the same year on the ides of

November consecrated Bishop of Christ's church by Archbishop Wulfstan.

((A.D. 1020. And caused to be built there [Canterbury] a minster of stone and lime, for the souls of the men

who there were slain, and gave it to one of his priests, whose name was Stigand.))

A.D. 1021. This year King Knute, at Martinmas, outlawed Earl Thurkyll; and Bishop Elfgar, the abundant

giver of alms, died in the morning of Christmas day.

A.D. 1022. This year went King Knute out with his ships to the Isle of Wight. And Bishop Ethelnoth went to

Rome; where he was received with much honour by Benedict the magnificent pope, who with his own hand

placed the pall upon him, and with great pomp consecrated him archbishop, and blessed him, on the nones of

October. The archbishop on the selfsame day with the same pall performed mass, as the pope directed him,

after which he was magnificently entertained by the pope himself; and afterwards with a full blessing

proceeded homewards. Abbot Leofwine, who had been unjustly expelled from Ely, was his companion; and

he cleared himself of everything, which, as the pope informed him, had been laid to his charge, on the

testimony of the archbishop and of all the company that were with him.


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part IV 62



Top




Page No 65


((A.D. 1022. And afterwards with the pall he there [at Rome] performed mass as the pope instructed him: and

he feasted after that with the pope; and afterwards went home with a full blessing.))

A.D. 1023. This year returned King Knute to England; and Thurkyll and he were reconciled. He committed

Denmark and his son to the care of Thurkyll, whilst he took Thurkyll's son with him to England. This year

died Archbishop Wulfstan; and Elfric succeeded him; and Archbishop Egelnoth blessed him in Canterbury.

This year King Knute in London, in St. Paul's minster, gave full leave (60) to Archbishop Ethelnoth, Bishop

Britwine, and all God's servants that were with them, that they might take up from the grave the archbishop,

Saint Elphege. And they did so, on the sixth day before the ides of June; and the illustrious king, and the

archbishop, and the diocesan bishops, and the earls, and very many others, both clergy and laity, carried by

ship his holy corpse over the Thames to Southwark. And there they committed the holy martyr to the

archbishop and his companions; and they with worthy pomp and sprightly joy carried him to Rochester.

There on the third day came the Lady Emma with her royal son Hardacnute; and they all with much majesty,

and bliss, and songs of praise, carried the holy archbishop into Canterbury, and so brought him gloriously

into the church, on the third day before the ides of June. Afterwards, on the eighth day, the seventeenth before

the calends of July, Archbishop Ethelnoth, and Bishop Elfsy, and Bishop Britwine, and all they that were

with them, lodged the holy corpse of Saint Elphege on the north side of the altar of Christ; to the praise of

God, and to the glory of the holy archbishop, and to the everlasting salvation of all those who there his holy

body daily seek with earnest heart and all humility. May God Almighty have mercy on all Christian men

through the holy intercession of Elphege!

((A.D. 1023. And he caused St. Elphege's remains to be borne from London to Canterbury.))

A.D. 1025. This year went King Knute to Denmark with a fleet to the holm by the holy river; where against

him came Ulf and Eglaf, with a very large force both by land and sea, from Sweden. There were very many

men lost on the side of King Knute, both of Danish and English; and the Swedes had possession of the field

of battle.

A.D. 1026. This year went Bishop Elfric to Rome, and received the pall of Pope John on the second day

before the ides of November.

A.D. 1028. This year went King Knute from England to Norway with fifty ships manned with English thanes,

and drove King Olave from the land, which he entirely secured to himself.

A.D. 1029. This year King Knute returned home to England.

A.D. 1030. This year returned King Olave into Norway; but the people gathered together against him, and

fought against him; and he was there slain, in Norway, by his own people, and was afterwards canonised.

Before this, in the same year, died Hacon the doughty earl, at sea.

((A.D. 1030. This year came King Olave again into Norway, and the people gathered against him, and fought

against him; and he was there slain.))

A.D. 1031. This year returned King Knute; and as soon as he came to England he gave to Christ's church in

Canterbury the haven of Sandwich, and all the rights that arise therefrom, on either side of the haven; so that

when the tide is highest and fullest, and there be a ship floating as near the land as possible, and there be a

man standing upon the ship with a taperaxe in his hand, whithersoever the large taperaxe might be thrown

out of the ship, throughout all that land the ministers of Christ's church should enjoy their rights. This year

went King Knute to Rome; and the same year, as soon as he returned home, he went to Scotland; and

Malcolm, king of the Scots, submitted to him, and became his man, with two other kings, Macbeth and

Jehmar; but he held his allegiance a little while only. Robert, Earl of Normandy, went this year to Jerusalem,


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part IV 63



Top




Page No 66


where he died; and William, who was afterwards King of England, succeeded to the earldom, though he was

a child.

A.D. 1032. This year appeared that wild fire, such as no man ever remembered before, which did great

damage in many places. The same year died Elfsy, Bishop of Winchester; and Elfwin, the king's priest,

succeeded him.

A.D. 1033. This year died Bishop Merewhite in Somersetshire, who is buried at Glastonbury; and Bishop

Leofsy, whose body resteth at Worcester, and to whose see Brihteh was promoted.

A.D. 1034. This year died Bishop Etheric, who lies at Ramsey.

A.D. 1035. This year died King Knute at Shaftesbury, on the second day before the ides of November; and he

is buried at Winchester in the old minster. He was king over all England very near twenty winters. Soon after

his decease, there was a council of all the nobles at Oxford; wherein Earl Leofric, and almost all the thanes

north of the Thames, and the naval men in London, chose Harold to be governor of all England, for himself

and his brother Hardacnute, who was in Denmark. Earl Godwin, and all the eldest men in Wessex, withstood

it as long as they could; but they could do nothing against it. It was then resolved that Elfgiva, the mother of

Hardacnute, should remain at Winchester with the household of the king her son. They held all Wessex in

hand, and Earl Godwin was their chief man. Some men said of Harold, that he was the son of King Knute and

of Elfgive the daughter of Alderman Elfelm; but it was thought very incredible by many men. He was,

nevertheless, full king over all England. Harold himself said that he was the son of Knute and of Elfgive the

Hampshire lady; though it was not true; but he sent and ordered to be taken from her all the best treasure that

she could not hold, which King Knute possessed; and she nevertheless abode there continually within the city

as long as she could.

A.D. 1036. This year came hither Alfred the innocent etheling, son of King Ethelred, and wished to visit his

mother, who abode at Winchester: but Earl Godwin, and other men who had much power in this land, did not

suffer it; because such conduct was very agreeable to Harold, though it was unjust. Him did Godwin let, and

in prison set. His friends, who did not fly, they slew promiscuously. And those they did not sell, like

slaughter'd cattle fell! Whilst some they spared to bind, only to wander blind! Some hamstrung, helpless

stood, whilst others they pursued. A deed more dreary none in this our land was done, since Englishmen gave

place to hordes of Danish race. But repose we must in God our trust, that blithe as day with Christ live they,

who guiltless died  their country's pride! The prince with courage met each cruel evil yet; till 'twas

decreed, they should him lead, all bound, as he was then, to Elybury fen. But soon their royal prize bereft

they of his eyes! Then to the monks they brought their captive; where he sought a refuge from his foes till

life's sad evening close. His body ordered then these good and holy men, according to his worth, low in the

sacred earth, to the steeple fullnigh, in the south aile to lie of the transept west  his soul with Christ doth

rest.

((A.D. 1036. This year died King Canute at Shaftesbury, and he is buried at Winchester in the Oldminster:

and he was king over all England very nigh twenty years. And soon after his decease there was a meeting of

all the witan at Oxford; and Leofric, the earl, and almost all the thanes north of the Thames, and the

"lithsmen" at London, chose Harold for chief of all England, him and his brother Hardecanute who was in

Denmark. And Godwin the earl and all the chief men of Wessex withstood it as long as they could; but they

were unable to effect anything in opposition to it. And then it was decreed that Elfgive, Hardecanute's

mother, should dwell at Winchester with the king's, her son's, house hold, and hold all Wessex in his power;

and Godwin the earl was their man. Some men said of Harold that he was son of King Canute and of Elfgive,

daughter of Elfelm the ealdorman, but it seemed quite incredible to many men; and he was nevertheless full

king over all England.))


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part IV 64



Top




Page No 67


A.D. 1037. This year men chose Harold king over all; and forsook Hardacnute, because he was too long in

Denmark; and then drove out his mother Elgiva, the relict of King Knute, without any pity, against the raging

winter! She, who was the mother of Edward as well as of King Hardacnute, sought then the peace of Baldwin

by the south sea. Then came she to Bruges, beyond sea; and Earl Baldwin well received her there; and he

gave her a habitation at Bruges, and protected her, and entertained her there as long as she had need. Ere this

in the same year died Eafy, the excellent Dean of Evesham.

((A.D. 1037. This year was driven out Elfgive, King Canute's relict; she was King Hardecanute's mother; and

she then sought the protection of Baldwin south of the sea, and he gave her a dwelling in Bruges, and

protected and kept her, the while that she there was.))

A.D. 1038. This year died Ethelnoth, the good archbishop, on the calends of November; and, within a little of

this time, Bishop Ethelric in Sussex, who prayed to God that he would not let him live any time after his dear

father Ethelnoth; and within seven nights of this he also departed. Then, before Christmas, died Bishop

Brihteh in Worcestershire; and soon after this, Bishop Elfric in East Anglia. Then succeeded Bishop Edsy to

the archbishopric, Grimkytel to the see of Sussex, and Bishop Lifing to that of Worcester shire and

Gloucestershire.

((A.D. 1038. This year died Ethelnoth, the good archbishop, on the kalends of November, and a little after,

Ethelric, bishop in Sussex, and then before Christmas, Briteagus, Bishop in Worcestershire, and soon after,

Elfric, bishop in EastAnglia.))

A.D. 1039. This year happened the terrible wind; and Bishop Britmar died at Lichfield. The Welsh slew

Edwin. brother of Earl Leofric, and Thurkil, and Elfget, and many good men with them. This year also came

Hardacnute to Bruges, where his mother was.

((A.D. 1039. This year King Harold died at Oxford, on the sixteenth before the kalends of April, and he was

buried at Westminster. And he ruled England four years and sixteen weeks; and in his days sixteen ships were

retained in pay, at the rate of eight marks for each rower, in like manner as had been before done in the days

of King Canute. And in this same year came King Hardecanute to Sandwich, seven days before midsummer.

And he was soon acknowledged as well by English as by Danes; though his advisers afterwards grievously

requited it, when they decreed that seventytwo ships should be retained in pay, at the rate of eight marks for

each rower. And in this same year the sester of wheat went up to fiftyfive pence, and even further.))

A.D. 1040. This year died King Harold at Oxford, on the sixteenth before the calends of April; and he was

buried at Westminster. He governed England four years and sixteen weeks; and in his days tribute was paid to

sixteen ships, at the rate of eight marks for each steersman, as was done before in King Knute's days. The

same year they sent after Hardacnute to Bruges, supposing they did well; and he came hither to Sandwich

with sixty ships, seven nights before midsummer. He was soon received both by the Angles and Danes,

though his advisers afterwards severely paid for it. They ordered a tribute for sixtytwo ships, at the rate of

eight marks for each steersman. Then were alienated from him all that before desired him; for he framed

nothing royal during his whole reign. He ordered the dead Harold to be dragged up and thrown into a ditch.

This year rose the sester of wheat to fiftyfive pence, and even further. This year Archbishop Edsy went to

Rome.

((A.D. 1040. This year was the tribute paid; that twentyone thousand pounds and ninetynine pounds. And

after that they paid to thirtytwo ships, eleven thousand and fortyeight pounds. And, in this same year, came

Edward, son of King Ethelred, hither to land, from Wealland; he was brother of King Hardecanute: they

were both sons of Elfgive; Emma, who was daughter of Earl Richard.))


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part IV 65



Top




Page No 68


A.D. 1041. This year was the tribute paid to the army; that was, 21,099 pounds; and afterwards to thirtytwo

ships, 11,048 pounds. This year also ordered Hardacnute to lay waste all Worcestershire, on account of the

two servants of his household, who exacted the heavy tribute. That people slew them in the town within the

minster. Early in this same year came Edward, the son of King Ethelred, hither to land, from Wealland to

Madron. He was the brother of King Hardacnute, and had been driven from this land for many years: but he

was nevertheless sworn as king, and abode in his brother's court while he lived. They were both sons of

Elfgive Emma, who was the daughter oœ Earl Richard. In this year also Hardacnute betrayed Eadulf, under

the mask of friendship. He was also allied to him by marriage. This year was Egelric consecrated Bishop of

York, on the third day before the ides of January.

((A.D. 1041. This year died King Hardecanute at Lambeth, on the sixth before the ides of June: and he was

king over all England two years wanting ten days; and he is buried in the Oldminster at Winchester with

King Canute his father. And his mother, for his soul, gave to the Newminster the head of St. Valentine the

martyr. And before he was buried, all people chose Edward for king at London: may he hold it the while that

God shall grant it to him! And all that year was a very heavy time, in many things and divers, as well in

respect to ill seasons as to the fruits of the earth. And so much cattle perished in the year as no man before

remembered, as well through various diseases as through tempests. And in this same time died Elsinus,

Abbot of Peterborough; and then Arnwius the monk was chosen abbot, because he was a very good man, and

of great simplicity.))

A.D. 1042. This year died King Hardacnute at Lambeth, as he stood drinking: he fell suddenly to the earth

with a tremendous struggle; but those who were nigh at hand took him up; and he spoke not a word

afterwards, but expired on the sixth day before the ides of June. He was king over all England two years

wanting ten nights; and he is buried in the old minster at Winchester with King Knute his father. And his

mother for his soul gave to the new minster the head of St. Valentine the Martyr: and ere he was buried all

people chose Edward for king in London. And they received him as their king, as was natural; and he reigned

as long as God granted him. All that year was the season very severe in many and various respects: both from

the inclemency of the weather, and the loss of the fruits of the earth. More cattle died this year than any man

ever remembered, either from various diseases, or from the severity of the weather. At this same time died

Elfsinus, Abbot of Peterborough; and they chose Arnwy, a monk, for their abbot; because he was a very good

and benevolent man.

A.D. 1043. This year was Edward consecrated king at Winchester, early on Easterday, with much pomp.

Then was Easter on the third day before the nones of April. Archbishop Edsy consecrated him, and before all

people well admonished him. And Stigand the priest was consecrated bishop over the East Angles. And this

year, fourteen nights before the mass of St. Andrew, it was advised the king, that he and Earl Leofric and Earl

Godwin and Earl Siward with their retinue, should ride from Gloucester to Winchester unawares upon the

lady; and they deprived her of all the treasures that she had; which were immense; because she was formerly

very hard upon the king her son, and did less for him than he wished before he was king, and also since: but

they suffered her to remain there afterwards. And soon after this the king determined to invest all the land

that his mother had in her hands, and took from her all that she had in gold and in silver and in numberless

things; because she formerly held it too fast against him. Soon after this Stigand was deprived of his

bishopric; and they took all that he had into their hands for the king, because he was nighest the counsel of

his mother; and she acted as he advised, as men supposed.

((A.D. 1043. This year was Edward consecrated king at Winchester on the first day of Easter. And this year,

fourteen days before Andrew'smass, the king was advised to ride from Gloucester, and Leofric the earl, and

Godwin the earl, and Sigwarth [Siward] the earl, with their followers, to Winchester, unawares upon the lady

[Emma]; and they bereaved her of all the treasures which she possessed, they were not to be told, because

before that she had been very hard with the king her son; inasmuch as she had done less for him than he

would, before he was king, and also since: and they suffered her after that to remain therein. This year King


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part IV 66



Top




Page No 69


Edward took the daughter [Edgitha] of Godwin the earl for his wife. And in this same year died Bishop

Brithwin, and he held the bishopric thirtyeight years, that was the bishopric of Sherborne, and Herman the

king's priest succeeded to the bishopric. And in this year Wulfric was hallowed Abbot of St. Augustine's at

Christmas, on Stephen's massday, by leave of the king, and, on account of his great infirmity, of Abbot

Elfstun.))

A.D. 1044. This year Archbishop Edsy resigned his see from infirmity, and consecrated Siward, Abbot of

Abingdon, bishop thereto, with the permission and advice of the king and Earl Godwin. It was known to few

men else before it was done; because the archbishop feared that some other man would either beg or buy it,

whom he might worse trust and oblige than him, if it were known to many men. This year there was very

great hunger over all England, and corn so dear as no man remembered before; so that the sester of wheat

rose to sixty pence, and even further. And this same year the king went out to Sandwich with thirtyfive

ships; and Athelstan, the churchwarden, succeeded to the abbacy of Abingdon, and Stigand returned to his

bishopric. In the same year also King Edward took to wife Edgitha, the daughter of Earl Godwin, ten nights

before Candlemas. And in the same year died Britwold, Bishop of Wiltshire, on the tenth day before the

calends of May; which bishopric he held thirtyeight winters; that was, the bishopric of Sherborn. And

Herman, the king's priest, succeeded to the bishopric. This year Wulfric was consecrated Abbot of St.

Augustine's, at Christmas, on the massday of St. Stephen, by the king's leave and that of Abbot Elfstan, by

reason of his great infirmity.

((A.D. 1044. This year died Living, Bishop in Devonshire, and Leoftic succeeded thereto; he was the king's

priest. And in this same year died Elfstan, Abbot of St. Augustine's, on the third before the nones of July.

And in this same year was outlawed Osgod Clapa.))

A.D. 1045. This year died Elfward, Bishop of London, on the eighth day before the calends of August. He

was formerly Abbot of Evesham, and well furthered that monastery the while that he was there. He went then

to Ramsey, and there resigned his life: and Mannie was chosen abbot, being consecrated on the fourth day

before the ides of August. This year Gunnilda, a woman of rank, a relative of King Knute, was driven out,

and resided afterwards at Bruges a long while, and then went to Denmark. King Edward during the year

collected a large fleet at Sandwich, through the threatening of Magnus of Norway; but his contests with

Sweyne in Denmark prevented him from coming hither.

((A.D. 1045. This year died Grimkytel, Bishop in Sussex, and Heca, the king's priest, succeeded thereto. And

in this year died Alwyn, Bishop of Winchester, on the fourth before the kalends of September; and Stigand,

bishop to the north [Flanders], succeeded thereto. And in the same year Sweyn the earl went out to Baldwin's

land [Of Elmham] to Bruges and abode there all the winter; and then in summer he went out.))

A.D. 1046. This year died Lifting, the eloquent bishop, on the tenth day before the calends of April. He had

three bishoprics; one in Devonshire, one in Cornwall, and another in Worcestershire. Then succeeded

Leofric, who was the king's priest, to Devonshire and to Cornwall, and Bishop Aldred to Worcestershire. This

year died Elfwine, Bishop of Winchester, on the fourth day before the calends of September; and Stigand,

Bishop of Norfolk, was raised to his see. Ere this, in the same year, died Grimkytel, Bishop of Sussex; and he

lies at Christchurch, in Canterbury. And Heca, the' king's priest, succeeded to the bishopric. Sweyne also

sent hither, and requested the aid of fifty ships against Magnus, king of the Norwegians; but it was thought

unwise by all the people, and it was prevented, because that Magnus had a large navy: and he drove Sweyne

out, and with much slaughter won the land. The Danes then gave him much money, and received him as king.

The same year Magnus died. The same year also Earl Sweyne went out to Baldwin's land, to Bruges; and

remained there all the winter. In the summer he departed.

A.D. 1046. This year went Earl Sweyne into Wales; and Griffin, king of the northern men with him; and

hostages were delivered to him. As he returned homeward, he ordered the Abbess of Leominster to be fetched


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part IV 67



Top




Page No 70


him; and he had her as long as he list, after which he let her go home. In this same year was outlawed Osgod

Clapa, the master of horse, before midwinter. And in the same year, after Candlemas, came the strong winter,

with frost and with snow, and with all kinds of bad weather; so that there was no man then alive who could

remember so severe a winter as this was, both through loss of men and through loss of cattle; yea, fowls and

fishes through much cold and hunger perished.

((A.D. 1046. This year died Brithwin, bishop in Wiltshire, and Herman was appointed to his see. In that year

King Edward gathered a large shipforce at Sandwich, on account of the threatening of Magnus in Norway:

but his and Sweyn's contention in Denmark hindered his coming here. This year died Athelstan, Abbot of

Abingdon, and Sparhawk, monk of St. Edmund'sbury, succeeded him. And in this same year died bishop

Siward, and Archbishop Eadsine again obtained the whole bishopric. And in this same year Lothen and Irling

came with twentyfive ships to Sandwich, and there took unspeakable booty, in men, and in gold, and in

silver, so that no man knew how much it all was. And they then went about Thanet, and would there do the

like; but the land'sfolk strenuously withstood them, and denied them as well landing as water; and thence

utterly put them to flight. And they betook themselves then into Essex, and there they ravaged, and took men,

and property, and whatsoever they might find. And they betook themselves then east to Baldwine's land, and

there they sold what they had plundered; and after that went their way east, whence they before had come. In

this year was the great synod at St. Remi's [Rheins]. Thereat was Leo the pope, and the Archbishop of

Burgundy [Lyons], and the Archbishop of Besancon, and the Archbishop of Treves, and the Archbishop of

Rheims; and many men besides, both clergy and laity. And King Edward sent thither Bishop Dudoc [Of

Wells], and Wulfric, Abbot of St. Augustine's, and Abbot Elfwin [Of Ramsey], that they might make known

to the king what should be there resolved on for Christendom. And in this same year King Edward went out

to Sandwich with a great fleet. And Sweyn the earl, son of Godwin the earl, came in to Bosham with seven

ships; and he obtained the king's protection, and he was promised that he should be held worthy of everything

which he before possessed. Then Harold the earl, his brother, and Beorn the earl contended that he should not

be held worthy of any of the things which the king had granted to them: but a protection of four days was

appointed him to go to his ships. Then befell it during this, that word came to the king that hostile ships lay

westward, and were ravaging. Then went Godwin the earl west about with two of the king's ships; the one

commanded Harold the earl, and the other Tosty his brother; and fortytwo of the people's ships. Then

Harold the earl was removed from the king's ship which Harold the earl before had commanded. Then went

they west to Pevensey, and lay there weatherbound. Upon this, after two days, then came Sweyn the earl

thither, and spoke with his father, and with Beorn the earl, and begged of Beorn that he would go with him to

the king at Sandwich, and help him to the king's friendship: and he granted it. Then went they as if they

would go to the king. Then whilst they were riding, then begged Sweyn of him that he would go with him to

his ships: saying that his seamen would depart from him unless he should at the soonest come thither. Then

went they both where his ships lay. When they came thither, then begged Sweyn the earl of him that he

would go with him on shipboard. He strenuously refused, so long as until his seamen seized him, and threw

him into the boat, and bound him, and rowed to the ship, and put him there aboard. Then they hoisted up their

sails and ran west to Exmouth, and had him with them until they slew him: and they took the body and buried

it in a church. And then his friends and litsmen came from London, and took him up, and bore him to

Winchester to the Oldminster, and he is there buried with King Canute his uncle. And Sweyn went then east

to Baldwin's land, and sat down there all the winter at Bruges, with his full protection. And in the same year

died Eadnoth [II.] bishop [Of Dorchester] of the north and Ulf was made bishop.))

A.D. 1047. This year died Athelstan, Abbot of Abingdon, on the fourth day before the calends of April; and

Sparhawk, monk of St. Edmundsbury, succeeded him. Easter day was then on the third day before the nones

of April; and there was over all England very great loss of men this year also. The same year came to

Sandwich Lothen and Irling, with twentyfive ships, and plundered and took incalculable spoil, in men, and

in gold, and in silver, so that no man wist what it all was; and went then about Thanet, and would there have

done the same; but the landfolk firmly withstood, and resisted them both by land and sea, and thence put

them to flight withal. They betook themselves thence into Essex, where they plundered and took men, and


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part IV 68



Top




Page No 71


whatsoever they could find, whence they departed eastward to Baldwin's land, and having deposited the

booty they had gained, they returned east to the place whence they had come before.

((A.D. 1047. This year died Living the eloquent bishop, on the tenth before the kalends of April, and he had

three bishoprics; one in Devonshire, and in Cornwall, and in Worcester. Then Leofric (61) succeeded to

Devonshire and to Cornwall, and Bishop Aldred to Worcester. And in this year Osgod, the master of the

horse, was outlawed: and Magnus [King of Norway] won Denmark. In this year there was a great council in

London at midLent, and nine ships of lightermen were discharged, and five remained behind. In this same

year came Sweyn the earl into England. And in this same year was the great synod at Rome, and King

Edward sent thither Bishop Heroman and Bishop Aldred; and they came thither on Easter eve. And

afterwards the pope held a synod at Vercelli, and Bishop Ulf came thereto; and well nigh would they have

broken his staff, if he had not given very great gifts; because he knew not how to do his duty so well as he

should. And in this year died Archbishop Eadsine, on the fourth before the kalends of November.))

A.D. 1048. This year came Sweyne back to Denmark; and Harold, the uncle of Magnus, went to Norway on

the death of Magnus, and the Northmen submitted to him. He sent an embassy of peace to this land, as did

also Sweyne from Denmark, requesting of King Edward naval assistance to the amount at least of fifty ships;

but all the people resisted it. This year also there was an earthquake, on the calends of May, in many places;

at Worcester, at Wick, and at Derby, and elsewhere wide throughout England; with very great loss by disease

of men and of cattle over all England; and the wild fire in Derbyshire and elsewhere did much harm. In the

same year the enemy plundered Sandwich, and the Isle of Wight, and slew the best men that were there; and

King Edward and the earls went out after them with their ships. The same year Bishop Siward resigned his

bishopric from infirmity, and retired to Abingdon; upon which Archbishop Edsy resumed the bishopric; and

he died within eight weeks of this, on the tenth day before the calends of November.

((A.D. 1048. This year was the severe winter: and this year died Alwyn, Bishop of Winchester, and Bishop

Stigand was raised to his see. And before that, in the same year, died Grinketel, Bishop in Sussex, and Heca

the priest succeeded to the bishopric. And Sweyn also sent hither, begging assistance against Magnus, King

of Norway; that fifty ships should be sent to his aid. But it seemed unadvisable to all people: and it was then

hindered by reason that Magnus had a great shipforce. And he then drove out Sweyn, and with much

manslaying won the land: and the Danes paid him much money and acknowledged him as king. And that

same year Magnus died. In this year King Edward appointed Robert, of London, Archbishop of Canterbury,

during Lent. And in the same Lent he went to Rome after his pall: and the king gave the bishopric of London

to Sparhafoc, Abbot of Abingdon; and the king gave the abbacy of Abingdon to Bishop Rodulf, his kinsman.

Then came the archbishop from Rome one day before St. Peter's mass eve, and entered on his

archiepiscopal see at Christ's Church on St. Peter's massday; and soon after went to the king. Then came

Abbot Sparhafoc to him with the king's writ and seal, in order that he should consecrate him Bishop of

London. Then the archbishop refused, and said that the pope had forbidden it him. Then went the abbot to the

archbishop again for that purpose, and there desired episcopal ordination; and the archbishop constantly

refused him, and said that the pope had forbidden it him. Then went the abbot to London, and occupied the

bishopric which the king before had granted him, with his full leave, all the summer and the harvest. And

then came Eustace [Earl of Boulogne] from beyond sea soon after the bishop, and went to the king, and spoke

with him that which he then would, and went then homeward. When he came to Canterbury, east, then took

he refreshment there, and his men, and went to Dover. When he was some mile or more, on this side of

Dover, then he put on his breastplate, and so did all his companions, and went to Dover. When they came

thither, then would they lodge themselves where they chose. Then came one of his men, and would abide in

the house of a householder against his will, and wounded the householder; and the householder slew the

other. Then Eustace got upon his horse, and his companions upon theirs; and they went to the householder,

and slew him within his own dwelling; and they went up towards the town, and slew, as well within as

without, more than twenty men. And the townsmen slew nineteen men on the other side, and wounded they

knew not how many. And Eustace escaped with a few men, and went again to the king, and made known to


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part IV 69



Top




Page No 72


him, in part, how they had fared. And the king became very wroth with the townsmen. And the king sent off

Godwin the earl, and bade him go into Kent in a hostile manner to Dover: for Eustace had made it appear to

the king, that it had been more the fault of the townsmen than his: but it was not so. And the earl would not

consent to the inroad, because he was loth to injure his own people. Then the king sent after all his council,

and bade them come to Gloucester, nigh the aftermass of St. Mary. Then had the Welshmen erected a castle

in Herefordshire among the people of Sweyn the earl, and wrought every kind of harm and disgrace to the

king's men there about which they could. Then came Godwin the earl, and Sweyn the earl, and Harold the

earl, together at Beverstone, and many men with them, in order that they might go to their royal lord, and to

all the peers who were assembled with him, in order that they might have the advice of the king and his aid,

and of all this council, how they might avenge the king's disgrace, and the whole nation's. Then were the

Welshmen with the king beforehand, and accused the earls, so that they might not come within his eyes'

sight; because they said that they were coming thither in order to betray the king. Thither had come Siward

the earl [Of Northumbria] and Leofric the earl [Of Mercia], and much people with them, from the north, to

the king; and it was made known to the Earl Godwin and his sons, that the king and the men who were with

him, were taking counsel concerning them: and they arrayed themselves on the other hand resolutely, though

it were loathful to them that they should stand against their royal lord. Then the peers on either side decreed

that every kind of evil should cease: and the king gave the peace of God and his full friendship to either side.

Then the king and his peers decreed that a council of all the nobles should be held for the second time in

London at the harvest equinox; and the king directed the army to be called out, as well south of the Thames

as north, all that was in any way most eminent. Then declared they Sweyn the earl an outlaw, and summoned

Godwin the earl and Harold the earl, to the council, as quickly as they could effect it. When they had come

thither, then were they summoned into the council. Then required he safe conduct and hostages, so that he

might come, unbetrayed, into the council and out of the council. Then the king demanded all the thanes

whom the earls before had: and they granted them all into his hands. Then the king sent again to them, and

commanded them that they should come with twelve men to the king's council. Then the earl again required

safe conduct and hostages, that he might defend himself against each of those things which were laid to him.

Then were the hostages refused him; and he was allowed a safe conduct for five nights to go out of the land.

And then Godwin the earl and Sweyn the earl went to Bosham, and shoved out their ships, and betook

themselves beyond sea, and sought Baldwin's protection, and abode there all the winter. And Harold the earl

went west to Ireland, and was there all the winter within the king's protection. And soon after this happened,

then put away the king the lady who had been consecrated his queen [Editha], and caused to be taken from

her all which she possessed, in land, and in gold, and in silver, and in all things, and delivered her to his sister

at Wherwell. And Abbot Sparhafoc was then driven out of the bishopric of London, and William the king's

priest was ordained thereto. And then Odda was appointed earl over Devonshire, and over Somerset, and over

Dorset, and over the Welsh. And Algar, the son of Leofric the earl, was appointed to the earldom which

Harold before held.))

A.D. 1049. (62) This year the emperor gathered an innumerable army against Baldwin of Bruges, because he

had destroyed the palace of Nimeguen, and because of many other ungracious acts that he did against him.

The army was immense that he had collected together. There was Leo, the Pope of Rome, and the patriarch,

and many other great men of several provinces. He sent also to King Edward, and requested of him naval aid,

that he might not permit him to escape from him by water. Whereupon he went to Sandwich, and lay there

with a large naval armament, until the emperor had all that he wished of Baldwin. Thither also came back

again Earl Sweyne, who had gone from this land to Denmark, and there ruined his cause with the Danes. He

came hither with a pretence, saying that he would again submit to the king, and be his man; and he requested

Earl Beorn to be of assistance to him, and give him land to feed him on. But Harold, his brother, and Earl

Beorn resisted, and would give him nothing of that which the king had given them. The king also refused him

everything. Whereupon Swevne retired to his ships at Bosham. Then, after the settlement between the

emperor and Baldwin, many ships went home, and the king remained behind Sandwich with a few ships. Earl

Godwin also sailed fortytwo ships from Sandwich to Pevensey, and Earl Beorn went with him. Then the

king gave leave to all the Mercians to return home, and they did so. Then it was told the king that Osgod lay


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part IV 70



Top




Page No 73


at Ulps with thirtynine ships; whereupon the king sent after the ships that he might dispatch, which before

had gone homewards, but still lay at the Nore. Then Osgod fetched his wife from Bruges; and they went back

again with six ships; but the rest went towards Essex, to Eadulf'sness, and there plundered, and then

returned to their ships. But there came upon them a strong wind, so that they were all lost but four persons,

who were afterwards slain beyond sea. Whilst Earl Godwin and Earl Beorn lay at Pevensey with their ships,

came Earl Sweyne, and with a pretence requested of Earl Beorn, who was his uncle's son, that he would be

his companion to the king at Sandwich, and better his condition with him; adding, that he would swear oaths

to him, and be faithful to him. Whereupon Beorn concluded, that he would not for their relationship betray

him. He therefore took three companions with him, and they rode to Bosham, where his (63) ships lay, as

though they should proceed to Sandwich; but they suddenly bound him, and led him to the ships, and went

thence with him to Dartmouth, where they ordered him to be slain and buried deep. He was afterwards found,

and Harold his cousin fetched him thence, and led him to Winchester, to the old minster, where he buried him

with King Knute, his uncle. Then the king and all the army proclaimed Sweyne an outlaw. A little before this

the men of Hastings and thereabout fought his two ships with their ships, and slew all the men, and brought

the ships to Sandwich to the king. Eight ships had he, ere he betrayed Beorn; afterwards they all forsook him

except two; whereupon he went eastward to the land of Baldwin, and sat there all the winter at Bruges, in full

security. In the same year came up from Ireland thirtysix ships on the Welsh coast, and thereabout

committed outrages, with the aid of Griffin, the Welsh king. The people were soon gathered against them,

and there was also with them Bishop Eldred, but they had too little assistance, and the enemy came unawares

on them very early in the morning, and slew on the spot many good men; but the others burst forth with the

bishop. This was done on the fourth day before the calends of August. This year died the good Bishop Ednoth

in Oxfordshire; and Oswy, Abbot of Thomey; and Wulfnoth, Abbot of Westminster; and King Edward gave

the bishopric which Ednoth had to Ulf his priest, but it ill betided him; and he was driven from it, because he

did nought like a bishop therein, so that it shameth us now to say more. Bishop Siward also died who lies at

Abingdon. In this same year King Edward put nine ships out of pay; and the crews departed, and went away

with the ships withal, leaving five ships only behind, for whom the king ordered twelve months pay. The

same year went Bishops Hereman and Aldred to the pope at Rome on the king's errand. This year was also

consecrated the great minster at Rheims, in the presence of Pope Leo and the emperor. There was also a great

synod at St. Remy; (64) at which was present Pope Leo, with the Archbishops of Burgundy, of Besancon, of

Treves, and of Rheims; and many wise men besides, both clergy and laity. A great synod there held they

respecting the service of God, at the instance of St. Leo the pope. It is difficult to recognise all the bishops

that came thither, and also abbots. King Edward sent thither Bishop Dudoc, and Abbot Wulfric, of St.

Augustine's, and Elfwin, Abbot of Ramsey, with the intent that they should report to the king what was

determined there concerning Christendom. This same year came Earl Sweyne into England.

((A.D. 1049. This year Sweyn came again to Denmark, and Harold. uncle of Magnus, went to Norway after

Magnus was dead; and the Normans acknowledged him: and he sent hither to land concerning peace. And

Sweyn also sent from Denmark, and begged of King Edward the aid of his ships. They were to be at least

fifty ships: but all people opposed it. And this year also there was an earthquake, on the kalends of May, in

many places in Worcester, and in Wick, and in Derby, and elsewhere; and also there was a great mortality

among men, and murrain among cattle: and moreover, the wildfire did much evil in Derbyshire and

elsewhere.))

A.D. 1050. This year returned the bishops home from Rome; (65) and Earl Sweyne had his sentence of

outlawry reversed. The same year died Edsy, Archbishop of Canterbury, on the fourth day before the calends

of November; and also in the same year Elfric, Archbishop of York, on the eleventh before the calends of

February, a very venerable man and wise, and his body lies at Peterborough. Then had King Edward a

meeting of the great council in London, in midlent, at which he appointed Robert the Frank, who was before

Bishop of London, Archbishop of Canterbury; and he, during the same Lent, went to Rome after his pall. The

king meanwhile gave the see of London to Sparhawk, Abbot of Abingdon, but it was taken from him again

before he was consecrated. The king also gave the abbacy of Abingdon to Bishop Rodulph his cousin. The


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part IV 71



Top




Page No 74


same year he put all the lightermen out of pay. (66) The pope held a council again, at Vercelli; and Bishop

Ulf came thither, where he nearly had his staff broken, had he not paid more money, because he could not

perform his duties so well as he should do. The same year King Edward abolished the Danegeld which King

Ethelred imposed. That was in the thirtyninth year after it had begun. That tribute harassed all the people of

England so long as is above written; and it was always paid before other imposts, which were levied

indiscriminately, and vexed men variously.

((A.D. 1050. Thither also came Sweyn the earl, who before had gone from this land to Denmark, and who

there had ruined himself with the Danes. He came thither with false pretences; saying that he would again be

obedient to the king. And Beorn the earl promised him that he would be of assistance to him. Then, after the

reconciliation of the emperor and of Baldwin, many of the ships went home, and the king remained behind at

Sandwich with a few ships; and Godwin the earl also went with fortytwo ships from Sandwich to Pevensey,

and Beorn the earl went with him. Then was it made known to the king that Osgood lay at Ulps with

thirtynine ships; and the king then sent after the ships which before had gone home, that he might send after

him. And Osgod fetched his wife from Bruges, and they went back again with six ships. And the others

landed in Sussex [Essex] at Eadulfness, and there did harm, and went again to their ships: and then a strong

wind came against them, so that they were all destroyed, except four, whose crews were slain beyond sea.

While Godwin the earl and Beorn the earl lay at Pevensey, then came Sweyn the earl, and begged Beorn the

earl, with fraud, who was his uncle's son, that he would be his companion to the king at Sandwich, and better

his affairs with him. He went then, on account of the relationship, with three companions, with him; and he

led him then towards Bosham, where his ships lay: and then they bound him, and led him on shipboard.

Then went he thence with him to Dartmouth, and there ordered him to be slain, and deeply buried.

Afterwards he was found, and borne to Winchester, and buried with king Canute his uncle. A little before

that, the men of Hastings and thereabout, fought two of his ships with their ships; and slew all the men, and

brought the ships to Sandwich to the king. Eight ships he had before he betrayed Beorn; after that all forsook

him except two. In the same year arrived in the Welsh Axa, from Ireland, thirtysix ships, and thereabout did

harm, with the help of Griffin the Welsh king. The people were gathered together against them; Bishop

Aldred [Of Worchester] was also there with them; but they had too little power. And they came unawares

upon them at very early morn; and there they slew many good men, and the others escaped with the bishop:

this was done on the fourth before the kalends of August. This year died, in Oxfordshire, Oswy, Abbot of

Thorney, and Wulfnoth, Abbot of Westminster; and Ulf the priest was appointed as pastor to the bishopric

which Eadnoth had held; but he was after that driven away; because he did nothing bishoplike therein: so

that it shameth us now to tell more about it. And Bishop Siward died: he lieth at Abingdon. And this year was

consecrated the great minster at Rheims: there was Pope Leo [IX.] and the emperor [Henry III]; and there

they held a great synod concerning God's service. St. Leo the pope presided at the synod: it is difficult to have

a knowledge of the bishops who came there, and how many abbots: and hence, from this land were sent two

from St. Augustine's and from Ramsey.))

A.D. 1051. This year came Archbishop Robert hither over sea with his pall from Rome, one day before St.

Peter's eve: and he took his archiepiscopal seat at Christchurch on St. Peter's day, and soon after this went to

the king. Then came Abbot Sparhawk to him with the king's writ and seal, to the intent that he should

consecrate him Bishop oœ London; but the archbishop refused, saying that the pope had forbidden him. Then

went the abbot to the archbishop again for the same purpose, and there demanded episcopal consecration; but

the archbishop obstinately refused, repeating that the pope had forbidden him. Then went the abbot to

London, and sat at the bishopric which the king had before given him, with his full leave, all the summer and

the autumn. Then during the same year came Eustace, who had the sister of King Edward to wife, from

beyond sea, soon after the bishop, and went to the king; and having spoken with him whatever he chose, he

then went homeward. When he came to Canterbury eastward, there took he a repast, and his men; whence he

proceeded to Dover. When he was about a mile or more on this side Dover, he put on his breastplate; and so

did all his companions: and they proceeded to Dover. When they came thither, they resolved to quarter

themselves wherever they lived. Then came one of his men, and would lodge at the house of a master of a


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part IV 72



Top




Page No 75


family against his will; but having wounded the master of the house, he was slain by the other. Then was

Eustace quickly upon his horse, and his companions upon theirs; and having gone to the master of the family,

they slew him on his own hearth; then going up to the boroughward, they slew both within and without more

than twenty men. The townsmen slew nineteen men on the other side, and wounded more, but they knew not

how many. Eustace escaped with a few men, and went again to the king, telling him partially how they had

fared. The king was very wroth with the townsmen, and sent off Earl Godwin, bidding him go into Kent with

hostility to Dover. For Eustace had told the king that the guilt of the townsmen was greater than his. But it

was not so: and the earl would not consent to the expedition, because he was loth to destroy his own people.

Then sent the king after all his council, and bade them come to Gloucester nigh the aftermass of St. Mary.

Meanwhile Godwin took it much to heart, that in his earldom such a thing should happen. Whereupon be

began to gather forces over all his earldom, and Earl Sweyne, his son, over his; and Harold, his other son,

over his earldom: and they assembled all in Gloucestershire, at Langtree, a large and innumerable army, all

ready for battle against the king; unless Eustace and his men were delivered to them handcuffed, and also the

Frenchmen that were in the castle. This was done seven nights before the latter mass of St. Mary, when King

Edward was sitting at Gloucester. Whereupon he sent after Earl Leofric, and north after Earl Siward, and

summoned their retinues. At first they came to him with moderate aid; but when they found how it was in the

south, then sent they north over all their earldom, and ordered a large force to the help of their lord. So did

Ralph also over his earldom. Then came they all to Gloucester to the aid of the king, though it was late. So

unanimous were they all in defence of the king, that they would seek Godwin's army if the king desired it.

But some prevented that; because it was very unwise that they should come together; for in the two armies

was there almost all that was noblest in England. They therefore prevented this, that they might not leave the

land at the mercy of our foes, whilst engaged in a destructive conflict betwixt ourselves. Then it was advised

that they should exchange hostages between them. And they issued proclamations throughout to London,

whither all the people were summoned over all this north end in Siward's earldom, and in Leofric's, and also

elsewhere; and Earl Godwin was to come thither with his sons to a conference; They came as far as

Southwark, and very many with them from Wessex; but his army continually diminished more and more; for

they bound over to the king all the thanes that belonged to Earl Harold his son, and outlawed Earl Sweyne his

other son. When therefore it could not serve his purpose to come to a conference against the king and against

the army that was with him, he went in the night away. In the morning the king held a council, and

proclaimed him an outlaw, with his whole army; himself and his wife, and all his three sons  Sweyne and

Tosty and Grith. And he went south to Thorney, (67) with his wife, and Sweyne his son, and Tosty and his

wife, a cousin of Baldwin of Bruges, and his son Grith. Earl Harold with Leofwine went to Bristol in the ship

that Earl Sweyne had before prepared and provisioned for himself; and the king sent Bishop Aldred from

London with his retinue, with orders to overtake him ere he came to ship. But they either could not or would

not: and he then went out from the mouth of the Avon; but he encountered such adverse weather, that he got

off with difficulty, and suffered great loss. He then went forth to Ireland, as soon as the weather permitted. In

the meantime the Welshmen had wrought a castle in Herefordshire, in the territory of Earl Sweyne, and

brought as much injury and disgrace on the king's men thereabout as they could. Then came Earl Godwin,

and Earl Sweyne, and Earl Harold, together at Beverstone, and many men with them; to the intent that they

might go to their natural lord, and to all the peers that were assembled with him; to have the king's counsel

and assistance, and that of all the peers, how they might avenge the insult offered to the king, and to all the

nation. But the Welshmen were before with the king, and bewrayed the earls, so that they were not permitted

to come within the sight of his eyes; for they declared that they intended to come thither to betray the king.

There was now assembled before the king (68) Earl Siward, and Earl Leofric, and much people with them

from the north: and it was told Earl Godwin and his sons, that the king and the men who were with him

would take counsel against them; but they prepared themselves firmly to resist, though they were loth to

proceed against their natural lord. Then advised the peers on either side, that they should abstain from all

hostility: and the king gave God's peace and his full friendship to each party. Then advised the king and his

council, that there should be a second time a general assembly of all the nobles in London, at the autumnal

equinox: and the king ordered out an army both south and north of the Thames, the best that ever was. Then

was Earl Sweyne proclaimed an outlaw; and Earl Godwin and Earl Harold were summoned to the council as


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part IV 73



Top




Page No 76


early as they could come. When they came thither and were cited to the council, then required they security

and hostages, that they might come into the council and go out without treachery. The king then demanded all

the thanes that the earls had; and they put them all into his hands. Then sent the king again to them, and

commanded them to come with twelve men to the king's council. Then desired the earl again security and

hostages, that he might answer singly to each of the things that were laid to his charge. But the hostages were

refused; and a truce of five nights was allowed him to depart from the land. Then went Earl Godwin and Earl

Sweyne to Bosham, and drew out their ships, and went beyond sea, seeking the protection of Baldwin; and

there they abode all the winter. Earl Harold went westward to Ireland, and was there all the winter on the

king's security. It was from Thorney (69) that Godwin and those that were with him went to Bruges, to

Baldwin's land, in one ship, with as much treasure as they could lodge therein for each man. Wonderful

would it have been thought by every man that was then in England, if any person had said before this that it

would end thus! For he was before raised to such a height, that he ruled the king and all England; his sons

were earls, and the king's darlings; and his daughter wedded and united to the king. Soon after this took place,

the king dismissed the lady who had been consecrated his queen, and ordered to be taken from her all that she

had in land, and in gold, and in silver, and in all things; and committed her to the care of his sister at

Wherwell. Soon after came Earl William from beyond sea with a large retinue of Frenchmen; and the king

entertained him and as many of his companions as were convenient to him, and let him depart again. Then

was Abbot Sparhawk driven from his bishopric at London; and William the king's priest was invested

therewith. Then was Oddy appointed earl over Devonshire, and over Somerset, and over Dorset, and over

Wales; and Algar, the son of Earl Leofric, was promoted to the earldom which Harold before possessed.

((A.D. 1051. In this year died Eadsine, Archbishop of Canterbury; and the king gave to Robert the

Frenchman, who before had been Bishop of London, the archbishopric. And Sparhafoc, Abbot of Abingdon,

succeeded to the bishopric of London; and it was afterwards taken from him before he was consecrated. And

Bishop Heroman and Bishop Aldred went to Rome.))

Part V

A.D. 1052. This year, on the second day before the nones of March, died the aged Lady Elfgiva Emma, the

mother of King Edward and of King Hardacnute, the relict of King Ethelred and of King Knute; and her body

lies in the old minster with King Knute. At this time Griffin, the Welsh king, plundered in Herefordshire till

he came very nigh to Leominster; and they gathered against him both the landsmen and the Frenchmen from

the castle; and there were slain very many good men of the English, and also of the French. This was on the

same day thirteen years after that Edwin was slain with his companions. In the same year advised the king

and his council, that ships should be sent out to Sandwich, and that Earl Ralph and Earl Odda should be

appointed headmen thereto. Then went Earl Godwin out from Bruges with his ships to Ysendyck; and sailed

forth one day before midsummereve, till he came to the Ness that is to the south of Romney. When it came

to the knowledge of the earls out at Sandwich, they went out after the other ships; and a landforce was also

ordered out against the ships. Meanwhile Earl Godwin had warning, and betook himself into Pevensey: and

the weather was so boisterous, that the earls could not learn what had become of Earl Godwin. But Earl

Godwin then went out again until he came back to Bruges; and the other ships returned back again to

Sandwich. Then it was advised that the ships should go back again to London, and that other earls and other

pilots should be appointed over them. But it was delayed so long that the marine army all deserted; and they

all betook themselves home. When Earl Godwin understood that, he drew up his sail and his ship: and they

(70) went west at once to the Isle of Wight; and landing there, they plundered so long that the people gave

them as much as they required of them. Then proceeded they westward until they came to Portland, where

they landed and did as much harm as they could possibly do. Meanwhile Harold had gone out from Ireland

with nine ships, and came up at Potlock with his ships to the mouth of the Severn, near the boundaries of

Somerset and Devonshire, and there plundered much. The landfolk collected against him, both from

Somerset and from Devonshire: but he put them to flight, and slew there more than thirty good thanes,

besides others; and went soon after about Penwithstert, where was much people gathered against him; but he


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part V 74



Top




Page No 77


spared not to provide himself with meat, and went up and slew on the spot a great number of the people 

seizing in cattle, in men, and in money, whatever he could. Then went he eastward to his father; and they

went both together eastward (71) until they came to the Isle of Wight, where they seized whatever had been

left them before. Thence they went to Pevensey, and got out with them as many ships as had gone in there,

and so proceeded forth till they came to the Ness; (72) getting all the ships that were at Romney, and at Hithe,

and at Folkstone. Then ordered King Edward to fit out forty smacks that lay at Sandwich many weeks, to

watch Earl Godwin, who was at Bruges during the winter; but he nevertheless came hither first to land, so as

to escape their notice. And whilst he abode in this land, he enticed to him all the Kentish men, and all the

boatmen from Hastings, and everywhere thereabout by the seacoast, and all the men of Essex and Sussex

and Surrey, and many others besides. Then said they all that they would with him live or die. When the fleet

that lay at Sandwich had intelligence about Godwin's expedition, they set sail after him; but he escaped them,

and betook himself wherever he might: and the fleet returned to Sandwich, and so homeward to London.

When Godwin understood that the fleet that lay at Sandwich was gone home, then went he back again to the

Isle of Wight, and lay thereabout by the seacoast so long that they came together  he and his son Earl

Harold. But they did no great harm after they came together; save that they took meat, and enticed to them all

the landfolk by the sea coast and also upward in the land. And they proceeded toward Sandwich, ever

alluring forth with them all the boatmen that they met; and to Sandwich they came with an increasing army.

They then steered eastward round to Dover, and landing there, took as many ships and hostages as they

chose, and so returned to Sandwich, where they did the same; and men everywhere gave them hostages and

provisions, wherever they required them. Then proceeded they to the Nore, and so toward London; but some

of the ships landed on the Isle of Shepey, and did much harm there; whence they steered to Milton Regis, and

burned it all, and then proceeded toward London after the earls. When they came to London, there lay the

king and all his earls to meet them, with fifty ships. The earls (73) then sent to the king, praying that they

might be each possessed of those things which had been unjustly taken from them. But the king resisted some

while; so long that the people who were with the earl were very much stirred against the king and against his

people, so that the earl himself with difficulty appeased them. When King Edward understood that, then sent

he upward after more aid; but they came very late. And Godwin stationed himself continually before London

with his fleet, till he came to Southwark; where he abode some time, until the flood (74) came up. On this

occasion he also contrived with the burgesses that they should do almost all that he would. When he had

arranged his whole expedition, then came the flood; and they soon weighed anchor, and steered through the

bridge by the south side. The landforce meanwhile came above, and arranged themselves by the Strand; and

they formed an angle with the ships against the north side, as if they wished to surround the king's ships. The

king had also a great land force on his side, to add to his shipmen: but they were most of them loth to fight

with their own kinsmen  for there was little else of any great importance but Englishmen on either side;

and they were also unwilling that this land should be the more exposed to outlandish people, because they

destroyed each other. Then it was determined that wise men should be sent between them, who should settle

peace on either side. Godwin went up, and Harold his son, and their navy, as many as they then thought

proper. Then advanced Bishop Stigand with God's assistance, and the wise men both within the town and

without; who determined that hostages should be given on either side. And so they did. When Archbishop

Robert and the Frenchmen knew that, they took horse; and went some west to Pentecost Castle, some north to

Robert's castle. Archbishop Robert and Bishop Ulf, with their companions, went out at Eastgate, slaying or

else maiming many young men, and betook themselves at once to Eadulf'sness; where he put himself on

board a crazy ship, and went at once over sea, leaving his pall and all Christendom here on land, as God

ordained, because he had obtained an honour which God disclaimed. Then was proclaimed a general council

without London; and all the earls and the best men in the land were at the council. There took up Earl

Godwin his burthen, and cleared himself there before his lord King Edward, and before all the nation;

proving that he was innocent of the crime laid to his charge, and to his son Harold and all his children. And

the king gave the earl and his children, and all the men that were with him, his full friendship, and the full

earldom, and all that he possessed before; and he gave the lady all that she had before. Archbishop Robert

was fully proclaimed an outlaw, with all the Frenchmen; because they chiefly made the discord between Earl

Godwin and the king: and Bishop Stigand succeeded to the archbishopric at Canterbury. At the council


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part V 75



Top




Page No 78


therefore they gave Godwin fairly his earldom, so full and so free as he at first possessed it; and his sons also

all that they formerly had; and his wife and his daughter so full and so free as they formerly had. And they

fastened full friendship between them, and ordained good laws to all people. Then they outlawed all

Frenchmen  who before instituted bad laws, and judged unrighteous judgment, and brought bad counsels

into this land  except so many as they concluded it was agreeable to the king to have with him, who were

true to him and to all his people. It was with difficulty that Bishop Robert, and Bishop William, and Bishop

Ulf, escaped with the Frenchmen that were with them, and so went over sea. Earl Godwin, and Harold, and

the queen, sat in their stations. Sweyne had before gone to Jerusalem from Bruges, and died on his way home

at Constantinople, at Michaelmas. It was on the Monday after the festival of St. Mary, that Godwin came

with his ships to Southwark: and on the morning afterwards, on the Tuesday, they were reconciled as it stands

here before recorded. Godwin then sickened soon after he came up, and returned back. But he made

altogether too little restitution of God's property, which he acquired from many places. At the same time

Arnwy, Abbot of Peterborough, resigned his abbacy in full health; and gave it to the monk Leofric, with the

king's leave and that of the monks; and the Abbot Arnwy lived afterwards eight winters. The Abbot Leofric

gilded the minster, so that it was called Gildenborough; and it then waxed very much in land, and in gold, and

in silver.

((A.D. 1052. This year died Alfric, Archbishop of York, a very pious man, and wise. And in the same year

King Edward abolished the tribute, which King Ethelred had before imposed: that was in the

nineandthirtieth year after he had begun it. That tax distressed all the English nation during so long a time,

as it has been written; that was ever before other taxes which were variously paid, and wherewith the people

were manifestly distressed. In the same year Eustace [Earl of Boulougne] landed at Dover: he had King

Edward's sister to wife. Then went his men inconsiderately after quarters, and a certain man of the town they

slew; and another man of the town their companion; so that there lay seven of his companions. And much

harm was there done on either side, by horse and also by weapons, until the people gathered together: and

then they fled away until they came to the king at Gloucester; and he gave them protection. When Godwin,

the earl, understood that such things should have happened in his earldom, then began he to gather together

people over all his earldom, (75) and Sweyn, the earl, his son, over his, and Harold, his other son, over his

earldom; and they all drew together in Gloucestershire, at Langtree, a great force and countless, all ready for

battle against the king, unless Eustace were given up, and his men placed in their hands, and also the

Frenchmen who were in the castle. This was done seven days before the latter mass of St. Mary. Then was

King Edward sitting at Gloucester. Then sent he after Leofric the earl [Of Mercia] and north after Siward the

earl [Of Northumbria] and begged their forces. And then they came to him; first with a moderate aid, but after

they knew how it was there, in the south, then sent they north over all their earldoms, and caused to be

ordered out a large force for the help of their lord; and Ralph, also, over his earldom: and then came they all

to Gloucester to help the king, though it might be late. Then were they all so united in opinion with the king

that they would have sought out Godwin's forces if the king had so willed. Then thought some of them that it

would be a great folly that they should join battle; because there was nearly all that was most noble in

England in the two armies, and they thought that they should expose the land to our foes, and cause great

destruction among ourselves. Then counselled they that hostages should be given mutually; and they

appointed a term at London, and thither the people were ordered out over all this north end, in Siward's

earldom, and in Leofric's, and also elsewhere; and Godwin, the earl, and his sons were to come there with

their defence. Then came they to Southwark, and a great multitude with them, from Wessex; but his band

continually diminished the longer he stayed. And they exacted pledges for the king from all the thanes who

were under Harold, the earl, his son; and then they outlawed Sweyn, the earl, his other son. Then did it not

suit him to come with a defence to meet the king, and to meet the army which was with him. Then went he by

night away; and the king on the morrow held a council, and, together with all the army, declared him an

outlaw, him and all his sons. And he went south to Thorney, and his wife, and Sweyn his son, and Tosty and

his wife, Baldwin's relation of Bruges, and Grith his son. And Harold, the earl, and Leofwine, went to Bristol

in the ship which Sweyn, the earl, had before got ready for himself, and provisioned. And the king sent

Bishop Aldred [Of Worcester] to London with a force; and they were to overtake him ere he came on


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part V 76



Top




Page No 79


shipboard: but they could not or they would not. And he went out from Avonmouth, and met with such

heavy weather that he with difficulty got away; and there he sustained much damage. Then went he forth to

Ireland when fit weather came. And Godwin, and those who were with him, went from Thorney to Bruges, to

Baldwin's land, in one ship, with as much treasure as they might therein best stow for each man. It would

have seemed wondrous to every man who was in England if any one before that had said that it should end

thus; for he had been erewhile to that degree exalted, as if he ruled the king and all England; and his sons

were earls and the king's darlings, and his daughter wedded and united to the king: she was brought to

Wherwell, and they delivered her to the abbess. Then, soon, came William, the earl [Of Normandy], from

beyond seas with a great band of Frenchmen; and the king received him, and as many of his companions as it

pleased him; and let him away again. This same year was given to William, the priest, the bishopric of

London, which before had been given to Sparhafoc.))

((A.D. 1052. This year died Elfgive, the lady, relict of King Ethelred and of King Canute, on the second

before the nones of March. In the same year Griffin, the Welsh king, plundered in Herefordshire, until he

came very nigh to Leominster; and they gathered against him, as well the landsmen as the Frenchmen of the

castle, and there were slain of the English very many good men, and also of the Frenchmen; that was on the

same day, on which, thirteen years before, Eadwine had been slain by his companions.))

((A.D. 1052. In this year died Elgive Emma, King Edward's mother and King Hardecanute's. And in this

same year, the king decreed, and his council, that ships should proceed to Sandwich; and they set Ralph, the

earl. and Odda, the earl [Of Devon], as headmen thereto. Then Godwin, the earl, went out from Bruges with

his ships to Ysendyck, and left it one day before Midsummer'smass eve, so that he came to Ness, which is

south of Romney. Then came it to the knowledge of the earls out at Sandwich; and they then went out after

the other ships, and a landforce was ordered out against the ships. Then during this, Godwin, the earl, was

warned, and then he went to Pevensey; and the weather was very severe, so that the earls could not learn what

was become of Godwin, the earl. And then Godwin, the earl, went out again, until he came once more to

Bruges; and the other ships returned again to Sandwich. And then it was decreed that the ships should return

once more to London, and that other earls and commanders should be appointed to the ships. Then was it

delayed so long that the shipforce all departed, and all of them went home. When Godwin, the earl, learned

that, then drew he up his sail, and his fleet, and then went west direct to the Isle of Wight, and there landed

and ravaged so long there, until the people yielded them so much as they laid on them. And then they went

westward until they came to Portland, and there they landed, and did whatsoever harm they were able to do.

Then was Harold come out from Ireland with nine ships; and then landed at Porlock, and there much people

was gathered against him; but he failed not to procure himself provisions. He proceeded further, and slew

there a great number of the people, and took of cattle, and of men, and of property as it suited him. He then

went eastward to his father; and then they both went eastward until they came to the Isle of Wight, and there

took that which was yet remaining for them. And then they went thence to Pevensey and got away thence as

many ships as were there fit for service, and so onwards until he came to Ness, and got all the ships which

were in Romney, and in Hythe, and in Folkstone. And then they went east to Dover, and there landed, and

there took ships and hostages, as many as they would, and so went to Sandwich and did "hand" the same; and

everywhere hostages were given them, and provisions wherever they desired. And then they went to North

mouth, and so toward London; and some of the ships went within Sheppey, and there did much harm, and

went their way to King's Milton, and that they all burned, and betook themselves then toward London after

the earls. When they came to London, there lay the king and all the earls there against them, with fifty ships.

Then the earls sent to the king, and required of him, that they might be held worthy of each of those things

which had been unjustly taken from them. Then the king, however, resisted some while; so long as until the

people who were with the earl were much stirred against the king and against his people, so that the earl

himself with difficulty stilled the people. Then Bishop Stigand interposed with God's help, and the wise men

as well within the town as without; and they decreed that hostages should be set forth on either side: and thus

was it done. When Archbishop Robert and the Frenchmen learned that, they took their horses and went, some

west to Pentecost's castle, some north to Robert's castle. And Archbishop Robert and Bishop Ulf went out at


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part V 77



Top




Page No 80


Eastgate, and their companions, and slew and otherwise injured many young men, and went their way to

direct Eadulf'sness; and he there put himself in a crazy ship, and went direct over sea, and left his pall and

all Christendom here on land, so as God would have it, inasmuch as he had before obtained the dignity so as

God would not have it. Then there was a great council proclaimed without London: and all the earls and the

chief men who were in this land were at the council. There Godwin bore forth his defence, and justified

himself, before King Edward his lord, and before all people of the land, that he was guiltless of that which

was laid against him, and against Harold his son, and all his children. And the king gave to the earl and his

children his full friendship, and full earldom, and all that he before possessed, and to all the men who were

with him. And the king gave to the lady [Editha] all that she before possessed. And they declared Archbishop

Robert utterly an outlaw, and all the Frenchmen, because they had made most of the difference between

Godwin, the earl, and the king. And Bishop Stigand obtained the Archbishopric of Canterbury. In this same

time Arnwy, Abbot of Peterborough, left the abbacy, in sound health, and gave it to Leofric the monk, by

leave of the king and of the monks; and Abbot Arnwy lived afterwards eight years. And Abbot Leofric then

(enriched) the minster, so that it was called the Goldenborough. Then it waxed greatly, in land, and in gold,

and in silver.))

((A.D. 1052. And went so to the Isle of Wight, and there took all the ships which could be of any service, and

hostages, and betook himself so eastward. And Harold had landed with nine ships at Porlock, and slew there

much people, and took cattle, and men, and property, and went his way eastward to his father, and they both

went to Romney, to Hythe, to Folkstone, to Dover, to Sandwich, and ever they took all the ships which they

found, which could be of any service, and hostages, all as they proceeded; and went then to London.))

A.D. 1053. About this time was the great wind, on the massnight of St. Thomas; which did much harm

everywhere. And all the midwinter also was much wind. It was this year resolved to slay Rees, the Welsh

king's brother, because he did harm; and they brought his head to Gloucester on the eve of Twelfthday. In

this same year, before Allhallowmas, died Wulfsy, Bishop of Lichfield; and Godwin, Abbot of Winchcomb;

and Aylward, Abbot of Glastonbury; all within one month. And Leofwine, Abbot of Coventry, took to the

bishopric at Lichfield; Bishop Aldred to the abbacy at Winchcomb; and Aylnoth took to the abbacy at

Glastonbury. The same year died Elfric, brother of Odda, at Deerhurst; and his body resteth at Pershore. In

this year was the king at Winchester, at Easter; and Earl Godwin with him, and Earl Harold his son, and

Tosty. On the day after Easter sat he with the king at table; when he suddenly sunk beneath against the

footrail, deprived of speech and of all his strength. He was brought into the king's chamber; and they

supposed that it would pass over: but it was not so. He continued thus speechless and helpless till the

Thursday; when he resigned his life, on the seventeenth before the calends of May; and he was buried at

Winchester in the old minster. Earl Harold, his son, took to the earldom that his father had before, and to all

that his father possessed; whilst Earl Elgar took to the earldom that Harold had before. The Welshmen this

year slew a great many of the warders of the English people at Westbury. This year there was no archbishop

in this land: but Bishop Stigand held the see of Canterbury at Christ church, and Kinsey that of York.

Leofwine and Wulfwy went over sea, and had themselves consecrated bishops there. Wulfwy took to the

bishopric which Ulf had whilst he was living and in exile.

((A.D. 1053. This year was the great wind on Thomas'smass night, and also the whole midwinter there was

much wind; and it was decreed that Rees, the Welsh king's brother, should be slain, because he had done

harm; and his head was brought to Gloucester on Twelfthday eve. And the same year, before All

Hallowsmass, died Wulfsy, Bishop of Lichfield, and Godwin, Abbot of Winchcomb, and Egelward, Abbot

of Clastonbury, all within one month, and Leofwine succeeded to the Bishopric of Lichfield, and Bishop

Aidred [Of Worcester] took the abbacy at Winchcomb, and Egelnoth succeeded to the abbacy at Glastonbury.

And the same year died Elfric, Odda's brother at Deorhurst; and his body resteth at Pershore. And the same

year died Godwin the earl; and he fell ill as he sat with the king at Winchester. And Harold his son succeeded

to the earldom which his father before held; and Elgar, the earl, succeeded to the earldom which Harold

before held.))


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part V 78



Top




Page No 81


((A.D. 1053. In this year died Godwin, the earl, on the seventeenth before the kalends of May, and he is

buried at Winchester, in the Oldminster; and Harold, the earl, his son, succeeded to the earldom, and to all

that which his father had held: and Elgar, the earl, succeeded to the earldom which Harold before held.))

A.D. 1054. This year died Leo the holy pope, at Rome: and Victor was chosen pope in his stead. And in this

year was so great loss of cattle as was not remembered for many winters before. This year went Earl Siward

with a large army against Scotland, consisting both of marines and landforces; and engaging with the Scots,

he put to flight the King Macbeth; slew all the best in the land; and led thence much spoil, such as no man

before obtained. Many fell also on his side, both Danish and English; even his own son, Osborn, and his

sister's son, Sihward: and many of his housecarls, and also of the king's, were there slain that day, which

was that of the Seven Sleepers. This same year went Bishop Aldred south over sea into Saxony, to Cologne,

on the king's errand; where he was entertained with great respect by the emperor, abode there wellnigh a

year, and received presents not only from the court, but from the Bishop of Cologne and the emperor. He

commissioned Bishop Leofwine to consecrate the minster at Evesham; and it was consecrated in the same

year, on the sixth before the ides of October. This year also died Osgod Clapa suddenly in his bed, as he lay

at rest.

((A.D. 1054. This year went Siward the earl with a great army into Scotland, both with a shipforce and with

a landforce, and fought against the Scots, and put to flight King Macbeth, and slew all who were the chief

men in the land, and led thence much booty, such as no man before had obtained. But his son Osborn, and his

sister's son Siward, and some of his housecarls, and also of the king's, were there slain, on the day of the

Seven Sleepers. The same year went Bishop Aldred to Cologne, over sea, on the king's errand; and he was

there received with much worship by the emperor [Henry III], and there he dwelt well nigh a year; and either

gave him entertainment, both the Bishop of Cologne and the emperor. And he gave leave to Bishop Leofwine

[Of Lichfield] to consecrate the minster at Evesham on the sixth before the ides of October. In this year died

Osgod suddenly in his bed. And this year died St. Leo the pope; and Victor was chosen pope in his stead.))

A.D. 1055. This year died Earl Siward at York; and his body lies within the minster at Galmanho, (76) which

he had himself ordered to be built and consecrated, in the name of God and St. O1ave, to the honour of God

and to all his saints. Archbishop Kinsey fetched his pall from Pope Victor. Then, within a little time after, a

general council was summoned in London, seven nights before midLent; at which Earl Elgar, son of Earl

Leofric, was outlawed almost without any guilt; because it was said against him that he was the betrayer of

the king and of all the people of the land. And he was arraigned thereof before all that were there assembled,

though the crime laid to his charge was unintentional. The king, however, gave the earldom, which Earl

Siward formerly had, to Tosty, son of Earl Godwin. Whereupon Earl Elgar sought Griffin's territory in

NorthWales; whence he went to Ireland, and there gave him a fleet of eighteen ships, besides his own; and

then returned to Wales to King Griffin with the armament, who received him on terms of amity. And they

gathered a great force with the Irishmen and the Welsh: and Earl Ralph collected a great army against them at

the town of Hereford; where they met; but ere there was a spear thrown the English people fled, because they

were on horses. The enemy then made a great slaughter there  about four hundred or five hundred men;

they on the other side none. They went then to the town, and burned it utterly; and the large minster (77) also

which the worthy Bishop Athelstan had caused to be built, that they plundered and bereft of relic and of reef,

and of all things whatever; and the people they slew, and led some away. Then an army from all parts of

England was gathered very nigh; (78) and they came to Gloucester: whence they sallied not far out against

the Welsh, and there lay some time. And Earl Harold caused the dike to be dug about the town the while.

Meantime men began to speak of peace; and Earl Harold and those who were with him came to Bilsley,

where amity and friendship were established between them. The sentence of outlawry against Earl Elgar was

reversed; and they gave him all that was taken from him before. The fleet returned to Chester, and there

awaited their pay, which Elgar promised them. The slaughter was on the ninth before the calends of

November. In the same year died Tremerig, the Welsh bishop, soon after the plundering; who was Bishop

Athelstan's substitute, after he became infirm.


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part V 79



Top




Page No 82


((A.D. 1055. In this year died Siward the earl at York, and he lies at Galmanho, in the minster which himself

caused to be built, and consecrated in God's and Olave's name. And Tosty succeeded to the earldom which he

had held. And Archbishop Kynsey [Of York], fetched his pall from Pope Victor. And soon thereafter was

outlawed Elgar the earl, son of Leofric the earl, wellnigh without guilt. But he went to Ireland and to Wales,

and procured himself there a great force, and so went to Hereford: but there came against him Ralph the earl,

with a large army, and with a slight conflict he put them to flight, and much people slew in the flight: and

they went then into Herefordport, and that they ravaged, and burned the great minster which Bishop

Athelstan had built, and slew the priests within the minster, and many in addition thereto, and took all the

treasures therein, and carried them away with them. And when they had done the utmost evil, this counsel

was counselled: that Elgar the earl should be inlawed, and be given his earldom, and all that had been taken

from him. This ravaging happened on the 9th before the Kalends of November. In the same year died

Tremerin the Welsh bishop [Of St. David's] soon after that ravaging: and he was Bishop Athelstan's coadjutor

from the time that he had become infirm.))

((A.D. 1055. In this year died Siward the earl: and then was summoned a general council, seven days before

Midlent; and they outlawed Elgar the earl, because it was cast upon him that he was a traitor to the king and

to all the people of the land. And he made a confession of it before all the men who were there gathered;

though the word escaped him unintentionally. And the king gave the earldom to Tosty, son of Earl Godwin,

which Siward the earl before held. And Elgar the earl sought Griffin's protection in NorthWales. And in this

year Griffin and Elgar burned St. Ethelbert's minster, and all the town of Hereford.))

A.D. 1056. This year Bishop Egelric resigned his bishopric at Durham, and retired to Peterborough minster;

and his brother Egelwine succeeded him. The worthy Bishop Athelstan died on the fourth before the ides of

February; and his body lies at Hereford. To him succeeded Leofgar, who was Earl Harold's mass priest. He

wore his knapsack in his priesthood, until he was a bishop. He abandoned his chrism and his rood  his

ghostly weapons  and took to his spear and to his sword, after his bishophood; and so marched to the field

against Griffin the Welsh king. (79) But he was there slain, and his priests with him, and Elnoth the sheriff,

and many other good men with them; and the rest fled. This was eight nights before midsummer. Difficult is

it to relate all the vexation and the journeying, the marching and the fatigue, the fall of men, and of horses

also, which the whole army of the English suffered, until Earl Leofric, and Earl Harold, and Bishop Eldred,

came together and made peace between them; so that Griffin swore oaths, that he would be a firm and faithful

viceroy to King Edward. Then Bishop Eldred took to the bishopric which Leofgar had before eleven weeks

and four days. The same year died Cona the emperor; and Earl Odda, whose body lies at Pershore, and who

was admitted a monk before his end; which was on the second before the calends of September; a good man

and virtuous and truly noble.

A.D. 1057. This year came Edward Etheling, son of King Edmund, to this land, and soon after died. His body

is buried within St. Paul's minster at London. He was brother's son to King Edward. King Edmund was called

Ironside for his valour. This etheling King Knute had sent into Hungary, to betray him; but he there grew in

favour with good men, as God granted him, and it well became him; so that he obtained the emperor's cousin

in marriage, and by her had a fair offspring. Her name was Agatha. We know not for what reason it was done,

that he should see his relation, King Edward. Alas! that was a rueful time, and injurious to all this nation 

that he ended his life so soon after he came to England, to the misfortune of this miserable people. The same

year died Earl Leofric, on the second before the calends of October; who was very wise before God, and also

before the world; and who benefited all this nation. (80) He lies at Coventry (81): and his son Elgar took to

his territory. This year died Earl Ralph, on the twelfth before the calends of January; and lies at Peterborough.

Also died Bishop Heca, in Sussex; and Egelric was elevated to his see. This year also died Pope Victor; and

Stephen was chosen pope, who was Abbot of Monut Cassino.

((A.D. 1057. In this year Edward Etheling, King Edmund's son, came hither to land, and soon after died and

his body is buried within St. Paul's minster at London. And Pope Victor died, and Stephen [IX.] was chosen


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part V 80



Top




Page No 83


pope: he was Abbot of MontCassino. And Leofric the earl died, and Elgar his son succeeded to the earldom

which the father before held.))

A.D. 1058. This year was Earl Elgar banished: but he soon came in again by force, through Griffin's

assistance: and a naval armament came from Norway. It is tedious to tell how it all fell out. In this same year

Bishop Aldred consecrated the minster church at Gloucester, which he himself had raised (82) to the honour

of God and St. Peter; and then went to Jerusalem (83) with such dignity as no other man did before him, and

betook himself there to God. A worthy gift he also offered to our Lord's sepulchre; which was a golden

chalice of the value of five marks, of very wonderful workmanship. In the same year died Pope Stephen; and

Benedict was appointed pope. He sent hither the pall to Bishop Stigand; who as archbishop consecrated

Egelric a monk at Christ church, Bishop of Sussex; and Abbot Siward Bishop of Rochester.

((A.D. 1058. This year died Pope Stephen, and Benedict was consecrated pope: the same sent hither to land a

pall to Archbishop Stigand. And in this year died Heca, Bishop of Sussex; and Archbishop Stigand ordained

Algeric, a monk at Christchurch, Bishop of Sussex, and Abbot Siward Bishop of Rochester.))

A.D. 1059. This year was Nicholas chosen pope, who had been Bishop of Florence; and Benedict was

expelled, who was pope before. This year also was consecrated the steeple (84) at Peterborough, on the

sixteenth before the calends of November.

A.D. 1060. This year was a great earthquake on the Translation of St. Martin, and King Henry died in France.

Kinsey, Archbishop of York, died on the eleventh before the calends of January; and he lies at Peterborough.

Bishop Aldred succeeded to the see, and Walter to that of Herefordshire. Dudoc also died, who was Bishop of

Somersetshire; and Gisa the priest was appointed in his stead.

A.D. 1061. This year went Bishop Aldred to Rome after his pall; which he received at the hands of Pope

Nicholas. Earl Tosty and his wife also went to Rome; and the bishop and the earl met with great difficulty as

they returned home. In the same year died Bishop Godwin at St. Martin's, (85) on the seventh before the ides

of March; and in the selfsame year died Wulfric, Abbot of St. Augustine's, in the Easterweek, on the

fourteenth before the calends of May. Pope Nicholas also died; and Alexander was chosen pope, who was

Bishop of Lucca. When word came to the king that the Abbot Wulfric was dead, then chose he Ethelsy, a

monk of the old minster, to succeed; who followed Archbishop Stigand, and was consecrated abbot at

Windsor on St. Augustine s massday.

((A.D. 1061. In this year died Dudoc, Bishop of Somerset, and Giso succeeded. And in the same year died

Godwin, Bishop of St. Martin's, on the seventh before the ides of March. And in the selfsame year died

Wulfric, Abbot of St. Augustine's, within the Easter week, on the fourteenth before the kalends of May.

When word came to the king that Abbot Wulfric was departed, then chose he Ethelsy the monk thereto, from

the OldMinster, who then followed Archbishop Stigand, and was consecrated abbot at Windsor, on St.

Augustine's massday.))

A.D. 1063. This year went Earl Harold, after midwinter, from Gloucester to Rhyddlan; which belonged to

Griffin: and that habitation he burned, with his ships and all the rigging belonging thereto; and put him to

flight. Then in the gangdays went Harold with his ships from Bristol about Wales; where he made a truce

with the people, and they gave him hostages. Tosty meanwhile advanced with a landforce against them, and

plundered the land. But in the harvest of the same year was King Griffin slain, on the nones of August, by his

own men, through the war that he waged with Earl Harold. He was king over all the Welsh nation. And his

head was brought to Earl Harold; who sent it to the king, with his ship's head, and the rigging therewith. King

Edward committed the land to his two brothers, Blethgent and Rigwatle; who swore oaths, and gave hostages

to the king and to the earl, that they would be faithful to him in all things, ready to aid him everywhere by

water and land, and would pay him such tribute from the land as was paid long before to other kings.


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part V 81



Top




Page No 84


((A.D. 1063. This year went Harold the earl, and his brother Tosty the earl, as well with a landforce as a

shipforce, into Wales, and they subdued the land; and the people delivered hostages to them, and submitted;

and went afterwards and slew their King Griffin, and brought to Harold his head: and he appointed another

king thereto.))

A.D. 1065. This year, before Lammas, ordered Earl Harold his men to build at Portskeweth in Wales. But

when he had begun, and collected many materials, and thought to have King Edward there for the purpose of

hunting, even when it was all ready, came Caradoc, son of Griffin, with all the gang that he could get, and

slew almost all that were building there; and they seized the materials that were there got ready. Wist we not

who first advised the wicked deed. This was done on the massday of St. Bartholomew. Soon after this all

the thanes in Yorkshire and in Northumberland gathered themselves together at York, and outlawed their Earl

Tosty; slaying all the men of his clan that they could reach, both Danish and English; and took all his

weapons in York, with gold and silver, and all his money that they could anywhere there find. They then sent

after Morkar, son of Earl Elgar, and chose him for their earl. He went south with all the shire, and with

Nottinghamshire and Derbyshire and Lincolnshire, till he came to Northampton; where his brother Edwin

came to meet him with the men that were in his earldom. Many Britons also came with him. Harold also there

met them; on whom they imposed an errand to King Edward, sending also messengers with him, and

requesting that they might have Morcar for their earl. This the king granted; and sent back Harold to them, to

Northampton, on the eve of St. Simon and St. Jude; and announced to them the same, and confirmed it by

hand, and renewed there the laws of Knute. But the Northern men did much harm about Northampton, whilst

he went on their errand: either that they slew men, and burned houses and corn; or took all the cattle that they

could come at; which amounted to many thousands. Many hundred men also they took, and led northward

with them; so that not only that shire, but others near it were the worse for many winters. Then Earl Tosty and

his wife, and all they who acted with him, went south over sea with him to Earl Baldwin; who received them

all: and they were there all the winter. About midwinter King Edward came to Westminster, and had the

minster there consecrated, which he had himself built to the honour of God, and St. Peter, and all God's

saints. This churchhallowing was on Childermasday. He died on the eve of twelfthday; and he was buried

on twelfthday in the same minster; as it is hereafter said. Here Edward king, (86) of Angles lord, sent his

stedfast soul to Christ. In the kingdom of God a holy spirit! He in the world here abode awhile, in the kingly

throng of council sage. Four and twenty winters wielding the sceptre freely, wealth he dispensed. In the tide

of health, the youthful monarch, offspring of Ethelred! ruled well his subjects; the Welsh and the Scots, and

the Britons also, Angles and Saxons relations of old. So apprehend the first in rank, that to Edward all the

noble king were firmly held highseated men. Blitheminded aye was the harmless king; though he long ere,

of land bereft, abode in exile wide on the earth; when Knute o'ercame the kin of Ethelred, and the Danes

wielded the dear kingdom of Engleland. Eight and twenty winters' rounds they wealth dispensed. Then

came forth free in his chambers, in royal array, good, pure, and mild, Edward the noble; by his country

defended  by land and people. Until suddenly came the bitter Death and this king so dear snatched from

the earth. Angels carried his soul sincere into the light of heaven. But the prudent king had settled the realm

on highborn men  on Harold himself, the noble earl; who in every season faithfully heard and obeyed his

lord, in word and deed; nor gave to any what might be wanted by the nation's king. This year also was Earl

Harold hallowed to king; but he enjoyed little tranquillity therein the while that he wielded the kingdom.

((A.D. 1065. And the manslaying was on St. Bartholomew's massday. And then, after Michael'smass, all

the thanes in Yorkshire went to York, and there slew all Earl Tosty's household servants whom they might

hear of, and took his treasures: and Tosty was then at Britford with the king. And then, very soon thereafter,

was a great council at Northampton; and then at Oxford on the day of Simon and Jude. And there was Harold

the earl, and would work their reconciliation if he might, but he could not: but all his earldom him

unanimously forsook and outlawed, and all who with him lawlessness upheld, because he robbed God first,

and all those bereaved over whom he had power of life and of land. And they then took to themselves Morkar

for earl; and Tosty went then over sea, and his wife with him, to Baldwin's land, and they took up their winter

residence at St. Omer's.))


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part V 82



Top




Page No 85


A.D. 1066. This year came King Harold from York to Westminster, on the Easter succeeding the midwinter

when the king (Edward) died. Easter was then on the sixteenth day before the calends of May. Then was over

all England such a token seen as no man ever saw before. Some men said that it was the cometstar, which

others denominate the longhair'd star. It appeared first on the eve called "Litania major", that is, on the

eighth before the calends off May; and so shone all the week. Soon after this came in Earl Tosty from beyond

sea into the Isle of Wight, with as large a fleet as he could get; and he was there supplied with money and

provisions. Thence he proceeded, and committed outrages everywhere by the seacoast where he could land,

until he came to Sandwich. When it was told King Harold, who was in London, that his brother Tosty was

come to Sandwich, he gathered so large a force, naval and military, as no king before collected in this land;

for it was credibly reported that Earl William from Normandy, King Edward's cousin, would come hither and

gain this land; just as it afterwards happened. When Tosty understood that King Harold was on the way to

Sandwich, he departed thence, and took some of the boatmen with him, willing and unwilling, and went north

into the Humber with sixty skips; whence he plundered in Lindsey, and there slew many good men. When the

Earls Edwin and Morkar understood that, they came hither, and drove him from the land. And the boatmen

forsook him. Then he went to Scotland with twelve smacks; and the king of the Scots entertained him, and

aided him with provisions; and he abode there all the summer. There met him Harold, King of Norway, with

three hundred ships. And Tosty submitted to him, and became his man. (87) Then came King Harold (88) to

Sandwich, where he awaited his fleet; for it was long ere it could be collected: but when it was assembled, he

went into the Isle of Wight, and there lay all the summer and the autumn. There was also a landforce every

where by the sea, though it availed nought in the end. It was now the nativity of St. Mary, when the

provisioning of the men began; and no man could keep them there any longer. They therefore had leave to go

home: and the king rode up, and the ships were driven to London; but many perished ere they came thither.

When the ships were come home, then came Harald, King of Norway, north into the Tine, unawares, with a

very great seaforce  no small one; that might be, with three hundred ships or more; and Earl Tosty came

to him with all those that he had got; just as they had before said: and they both then went up with all the fleet

along the Ouse toward York. (89) When it was told King Harold in the south, after he had come from the

ships, that Harald, King of Norway, and Earl Tosty were come up near York, then went he northward by day

and night, as soon as he could collect his army. But, ere King Harold could come thither, the Earls Edwin and

Morkar had gathered from their earldoms as great a force as they could get, and fought with the enemy. (90)

They made a great slaughter too; but there was a good number of the English people slain, and drowned, and

put to flight: and the Northmen had possession of the field of battle. It was then told Harold, king of the

English, that this had thus happened. And this fight was on the eve of St. Matthew the apostle, which was

Wednesday. Then after the fight went Harold, King of Norway, and Earl Tosty into York with as many

followers as they thought fit; and having procured hostages and provisions from the city, they proceeded to

their ships, and proclaimed full friendship, on condition that all would go southward with them, and gain this

land. In the midst of this came Harold, king of the English, with all his army, on the Sunday, to Tadcaster;

where he collected his fleet. Thence he proceeded on Monday throughout York. But Harald, King of Norway,

and Earl Tosty, with their forces, were gone from their ships beyond York to Stanfordbridge; for that it was

given them to understand, that hostages would be brought to them there from all the shire. Thither came

Harold, king of the English, unawares against them beyond the bridge; and they closed together there, and

continued long in the day fighting very severely. There was slain Harald the Fairhair'd, King of Norway,

and Earl Tosty, and a multitude of people with them, both of Normans and English; (91) and the Normans

that were left fled from the English, who slew them hotly behind; until some came to their ships, some were

drowned, some burned to death, and thus variously destroyed; so that there was little left: and the English

gained possession of the field. But there was one of the Norwegians who withstood the English folk, so that

they could not pass over the bridge, nor complete the victory. An Englishman aimed at him with a javelin, but

it availed nothing. Then came another under the bridge, who pierced him terribly inwards under the coat of

mail. And Harold, king of the English, then came over the bridge, followed by his army; and there they made

a great slaughter, both of the Norwegians and of the Flemings. But Harold let the king's son, Edmund, go

home to Norway with all the ships. He also gave quarter to Olave, the Norwegian king's son, and to their

bishop, and to the earl of the Orkneys, and to all those that were left in the ships; who then went up to our


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part V 83



Top




Page No 86


king, and took oaths that they would ever maintain faith and friendship unto this land. Whereupon the King

let them go home with twenty four ships. These two general battles were fought within five nights.

Meantime Earl William came up from Normandy into Pevensey on the eve of St. Michael's mass; and soon

after his landing was effected, they constructed a castle at the port of Hastings. This was then told to King

Harold; and he gathered a large force, and came to meet him at the estuary of Appledore. William, however,

came against him unawares, ere his army was collected; but the king, nevertheless, very hardly encountered

him with the men that would support him: and there was a great slaughter made on either side. There was

slain King Harold, and Leofwin his brother, and Earl Girth his brother, with many good men: and the

Frenchmen gained the field of battle, as God granted them for the sins of the nation. Archbishop Aldred and

the corporation of London were then desirous of having child Edgar to king, as he was quite natural to them;

and Edwin and Morkar promised them that they would fight with them. But the more prompt the business

should ever be, so was it from day to day the later and worse; as in the end it all fared. This battle was fought

on the day of Pope Calixtus: and Earl William returned to Hastings, and waited there to know whether the

people would submit to him. But when he found that they would not come to him, he went up with all his

force that was left and that came since to him from over sea, and ravaged all the country that he overran, until

he came to Berkhampstead; where Archbishop Aldred came to meet him, with child Edgar, and Earls Edwin

and Morkar, and all the best men from London; who submitted then for need, when the most harm was done.

It was very illadvised that they did not so before, seeing that God would not better things for our sins. And

they gave him hostages and took oaths: and he promised them that he would be a faithful lord to them;

though in the midst of this they plundered wherever they went. Then on midwinter's day Archbishop Aldred

hallowed him to king at Westminster, and gave him possession with the books of Christ, and also swore him,

ere that he would set the crown on his head, that he would so well govern this nation as any before him best

did, if they would be faithful to him. Neverrhetess he laid very heavy tribute on men, and in Lent went over

sea to Normandy, taking with him Archbishop Stigand, and Abbot Aylnoth of Glastonbury, and the child

Edgar, and the Earls Edwin, Morkar, and Waltheof, and many other good men of England. Bishop Odo and

Earl William lived here afterwards, and wrought castles widely through this country, and harassed the

miserable people; and ever since has evil increased very much. May the end be good, when God will! In that

same expedition (92) was Leofric, Abbot of Peterborough; who sickened there, and came home, and died

soon after, on the night of Allhallowmass. God honour his soul! In his day was all bliss and all good at

Peterborough. He was beloved by all; so that the king gave to St. Peter and him the abbey at Burton, and that

at Coventry, which the Earl Leofric, who was his uncle, had formerly made; with that of Croyland, and that

of Thorney. He did so much good to the minster of Peterborough, in gold, and in silver, and in shroud, and in

land, as no other ever did before him, nor any one after him. But now was Gildenborough become a

wretched borough. The monks then chose for abbot Provost Brand, because he was a very good man, and

very wise; and sent him to Edgar Etheling, for that the landfolk supposed that he should be king: and the

etheling received him gladly. When King William heard say that, he was very wroth, and said that the abbot

had renounced him: but good men went between them, and reconciled them; because the abbot was a good

man. He gave the king forty marks of gold for his reconciliation; and he lived but a little while after  only

three years. Afterwards came all wretchedness and all evil to the minster. God have mercy on it!

((A.D. 1066. This year died King Edward, and Harold the earl succeeded to the kingdom, and held it forty

weeks and one day. And this year came William, and won England. And in this year ChristChurch

[Canterbury] was burned. And this year appeared a comet on the fourteenth before the kalends of May.))

((A.D. 1066. ...And then he [Tosty] went thence, and did harm everywhere by the seacoast where he could

land, as far as Sandwich. Then was it made known to King Harold, who was in London, that Tosty his

brother was come to Sandwich. Then gathered he so great a shipforce, and also a land force, as no king here

in the land had before gathered, because it had been soothly said unto him, that William the earl from

Normandy, King Edward's kinsman, would come hither and subdue this land: all as it afterwards happened.

When Tosty learned that King Harold was on his way to Sandwich, then went he from Sandwich, and took

some of the boatmen with him, some willingly and some unwillingly; and went then north into Humber, and


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part V 84



Top




Page No 87


there ravaged in Lindsey, and there slew many good men. When Edwin the earl and Morcar the earl

understood that, then came they thither, and drove him out of the land. And he went then to Scotland: and the

king of Scots protected him, and assisted him with provisions; and he there abode all the summer. Then came

King Harold to Sandwich, and there awaited his fleet, because it was long before it could be gathered

together. And when his fleet was gathered together, then went he into the Isle of Wight, and there lay all the

summer and the harvest; and a landforce was kept everywhere by the sea, though in the end it was of no

benefit. When it was the Nativity of St. Mary, then were the men's provisions gone, and no man could any

longer keep them there. Then were the men allowed to go home, and the king rode up, and the ships were

dispatched to London; and many perished before they came thither. When the ships had reached home, then

came King Harald from Norway, north into Tyne, and unawares, with a very large shipforce, and no small

one; that might be, or more. And Tosty the earl came to him with all that he had gotten, all as they had before

agreed; and then they went both, with all the fleet, along the Ouse, up towards York. Then was it made

known to King Harold in the south, as he was come from on shipboard, that Harald King of Norway and

Tosty the earl were landed near York. Then went he northward, day and night, as quickly as he could gather

his forces. Then, before that King Harold could come thither, then gathered Edwin the earl and Morcar the

earl from their earldom as great a force as they could get together; and they fought against the army, and

made great slaughter: and there was much of the English people slain, and drowned, and driven away in

flight; and the Northmen had possession of the place of carnage. And this fight was on the vigil of St.

Matthew the apostle, and it was Wednesday. And then, after the fight, went Harald, King of Norway, and

Tosty the earl, into York, with as much people as seemed meet to them. And they delivered hostages to them

from the city, and also assisted them with provisions; and so they went thence to their ships, and they agreed

upon a full peace, so that they should all go with him south, and this land subdue. Then, during this, came

Harold, king of the Angles, with all his forces, on the Sunday, to Tadcaster, and there drew up his force, and

went then on Monday throughout York; and Harald, King of Norway, and Tosty the earl, and their forces,

were gone from their ships beyond York to Stanfordbridge, because it had been promised them for a

certainty, that there, from all the shire, hostages should be brought to meet them. Then came Harold, king of

the English, against them, unawares, beyond the bridge, and they there joined battle, and very strenuously, for

a long time of the day, continued fighting: and there was Harald, King of Norway, and Tosty the earl slain,

and numberless of the people with them, as well of the Northmen as of the English: and the Northmen fled

from the English. Then was there one of the Norwegians who withstood the English people, so that they

might not pass over the bridge, nor obtain the victory. Then an Englishman aimed at him with a javelin, but

availed nothing; and then came another under the bridge, and pierced him terribly inwards under the coat of

mail. Then came Harold, king of the English, over the bridge, and his forces onward with him, and there

made great slaughter, as well of Norwegians as of Flemings. And the King's son, Edmund, Harold let go

home to Norway, with all the ships.))

((A.D. 1066. In this year was consecrated the minster at Westminster, on Childermassday. And King

Edward died on the eve of Twelfthday; and he was buried on Twelfthday within the newly consecrated

church at Westminster. And Harold the earl succeeded to the kingdom of England, even as the king had

granted it to him, and men also had chosen him thereto; and he was crowned as king on Twelfthday. And

that same year that he became king, he went out with a fleet against William [Earl of Normandy]; and the

while, came Tosty the earl into Humber with sixty ships. Edwin the earl came with a landforce and drove

him out; and the boatmen forsook him. And he went to Scotland with twelve vessels; and Harald, the King of

Norway, met him with three hundred ships, and Tosty submitted to him; and they both went into Humber,

until they came to York. And Morcar the earl, and Edwin the earl, fought against them; and the king of the

Norwegians had the victory. And it was made known to King Harold how it there was done, and had

happened; and he came there with a great army of English men, and met him at Stanfordbridge, and slew him

and the earl Tosty, and boldly overcame all the army. And the while, William the earl landed at Hastings, on

St. Michael'sday: and Harold came from the north, and fought against him before all his army had come up:

and there he fell, and his two brothers, Girth and Leofwin; and William subdued this land. And he came to

Westminster, and Archbishop Aldred consecrated him king, and men paid him tribute, delivered him


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part V 85



Top




Page No 88


hostages, and afterwards bought their land. And then was Leofric, Abbot of Peterborough, in that same

expedition; and there he sickened, and came home, and was dead soon thereafter, on Allhallowsmass

night; God be merciful to his soul! In his day was all bliss and all good in Peterborough; and he was dear to

all people, so that the king gave to St. Peter and to him the abbacy at Burton, and that of Coventry, which

Leofric the earl, who was his uncle, before had made, and that of Crowland, and that of Thorney. And he

conferred so much of good upon the minster of Peterborough, in gold, and in silver, and in vestments, and in

land, as never any other did before him, nor any after him. After, Goldenborough became a wretched

borough. Then chose the monks for abbot Brand the provost, by reason that he was a very good man, and

very wise, and sent him then to Edgar the etheling, by reason that the people of the land supposed that he

should become king: and the etheling granted it him then gladly. When King William heard say that, then

was he very wroth, and said that the abbot had despised him. Then went good men between them, and

reconciled them, by reason that the abbot was a good man. Then gave he the king forty marks of gold for a

reconciliation; and then thereafter, lived he a little while, but three years. After that came every tribulation

and every evil to the minster. God have mercy on it!))

A.D. 1067. This year came the king back again to England on St. Nicholas's day; and the same day was

burned the church of Christ at Canterbury. Bishop Wulfwy also died, and is buried at his see in Dorchester.

The child Edric and the Britons were unsettled this year, and fought with the castlemen at Hereford, and did

them much harm. The king this year imposed a heavy guild on the wretched people; but, notwithstanding, let

his men always plunder all the country that they went over; and then he marched to Devonshire, and beset the

city of Exeter eighteen days. There were many of his army slain; out he had promised them well, and

performed ill; and the citizens surrendered the city because the thanes had betrayed them. This summer the

child Edgar departed, with his mother Agatha, and his two sisters, Margaret and Christina, and

MerleSweyne, and many good men with them; and came to Scotland under the protection of King Malcolm,

who entertained them all. Then began King Malcolm to yearn after the child's sister, Margaret, to wife; but he

and all his men long refused; and she also herself was averse, and said that she would neither have him nor

any one else, if the Supreme Power would grant, that she in her maidenhood might please the mighty Lord

with a carnal heart, in this short life, in pure continence. The king, however, earnestly urged her brother, until

he answered Yea. And indeed he durst not otherwise; for they were come into his kingdom. So that then it

was fulfilled, as God had long ere foreshowed; and else it could not be; as he himself saith in his gospel: that

"not even a sparrow on the ground may fall, without his foreshowing." The prescient Creator wist long before

what he of her would have done; for that she should increase the glory of God in this land, lead the king

aright from the path of error, bend him and his people together to a better way, and suppress the bad customs

which the nation formerly followed: all which she afterwards did. The king therefore received her, though it

was against her will, and was pleased with her manners, and thanked God, who in his might had given him

such a match. He wisely bethought himself, as he was a prudent man, and turned himself to God, and

renounced all impurity; accordingly, as the apostle Paul, the teacher of all the gentries, saith: "Salvabitur vir

infidelis per mulierem fidelem; sic et mulier infidelis per virum fidelem," etc.: that is in our language, "Full

oft the unbelieving husband is sanctified and healed through the believing wife, and so belike the wife

through the believing husband." This queen aforesaid performed afterwards many useful deeds in this land to

the glory of God, and also in her royal estate she well conducted herself, as her nature was. Of a faithful and

noble kin was she sprung. Her father was Edward Etheling, son of King Edmund. Edmund was the son of

Ethelred; Ethelred the son of Edgar; Edgar the son of Edred; and so forth in that royal line: and her maternal

kindred goeth to the Emperor Henry, who had the sovereignty over Rome. This year went out Githa, Harold's

mother, and the wives of many good men with her, to the FlatHolm, and there abode some time; and so

departed thence over sea to St. Omer's. This Easter came the king to Winchester; and Easter was then on the

tenth before the calends of April. Soon after this came the Lady Matilda hither to this land; and Archbishop

Eldred hallowed her to queen at Westminster on Whit Sunday. Then it was told the king, that the people in

the North had gathered themselves together, and would stand against him if he came. Whereupon he went to

Nottingham, and wrought there a castle; and so advanced to York, and there wrought two castles; and the

same at Lincoln, and everywhere in that quarter. Then Earl Gospatric and the best men went into Scotland.


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part V 86



Top




Page No 89


Amidst this came one of Harold's sons from Ireland with a naval force into the mouth of the Avon unawares,

and plundered soon over all that quarter; whence they went to Bristol, and would have stormed the town; but

the people bravely withstood them. When they could gain nothing from the town, they went to their ships

with the booty which they had acquired by plunder; and then they advanced upon Somersetshire, and there

went up; and Ednoth, master of the horse, fought with them; but he was there slain, and many good men on

either side; and those that were left departed thence.

A.D. 1068. This year King William gave Earl Robert the earldom over Northumberland; but the landsmen

attacked him in the town of Durham, and slew him, and nine hundred men with him. Soon afterwards Edgar

Etheling came with all the Northumbrians to York; and the townsmen made a treaty with him: but King

William came from the South unawares on them with a large army, and put them to flight, and slew on the

spot those who could not escape; which were many hundred men; and plundered the town. St. Peter's minster

he made a profanation, and all other places also he despoiled and trampled upon; and the etheling went back

again to Scotland. After this came Harold's sons from Ireland, about midsummer, with sixtyfour ships into

the mouth of the Taft, where they unwarily landed: and Earl Breon came unawares against them with a large

army, and fought with them, and slew there all the best men that were in the fleet; and the others, being small

forces, escaped to the ships: and Harold's sons went back to Ireland again.

A.D. 1069. This year died Aldred, Archbishop of York; and he is there buried, at his see. He died on the day

of Protus and Hyacinthus, having held the see with much dignity ten years wanting only fifteen weeks. Soon

after this came from Denmark three of the sons of King Sweyne with two hundred and forty ships, together

with Earl Esborn and Earl Thurkill, into the Humber; where they were met by the child Edgar, and Earl

Waltheof, and MerleSweyne, and Earl Gospatric with the Northumbrians, and all the landsmen; riding and

marching full merrily with an immense army: and so all unanimously advanced to York; where they stormed

and demolished the castle, and won innumerable treasures therein; slew there many hundreds of Frenchmen,

and led many with them to the ships; but, ere that the shipmen came thither, the Frenchmen had burned the

city, and also the holy minster of St. Peter had they entirely plundered, and destroyed with fire. When the

king heard this, then went he northward with all the force that he could collect, despoiling and laying waste

the shire withal; whilst the fleet lay all the winter in the Humber, where the king could not come at them. The

king was in York on Christmas Day, and so all the winter on land, and came to Winchester at Easter. Bishop

Egelric, who was at Peterborough, was this year betrayed, and led to Westminster; and his brother Egelwine

was outlawed. This year also died Brand, Abbot of Peterborough, on the fifth before the calends of

December.

Part VI

A.D. 1070. This year Landfranc, who was Abbot of Caen, came to England; and after a few days he became

Archbishop of Canterbury. He was invested on the fourth before the calends of September in his own see by

eight bishops, his suffragans. The others, who were not there, by messengers and by letter declared why they

could not be there. The same year Thomas, who was chosen Bishop of York, came to Canterbury, to be

invested there after the ancient custom. But when Landfranc craved confirmation of his obedience with an

oath, he refused; and said, that he ought not to do it. Whereupon Archbishop Landfranc was wroth, and bade

the bishops, who were come thither by Archbishop Landfranc's command to do the service, and all the monks

to unrobe themselves. And they by his order so did. Thomas, therefore, for the time, departed without

consecration. Soon after this, it happened that the Archbishop Landfranc went to Rome, and Thomas with

him. When they came thither, and had spoken about other things concerning which they wished to speak,

then began Thomas his speech: how he came to Canterbury, and how the archbishop required obedience of

him with an oath; but he declined it. Then began the Archbishop Landfranc to show with clear distinction,

that what he craved he craved by right; and with strong arguments he confirmed the same before the Pope

Alexander, and before all the council that was collected there; and so they went home. After this came

Thomas to Canterbury; and all that the archbishop required of him he humbly fulfilled, and afterwards


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part VI 87



Top




Page No 90


received consecration. This year Earl Waltheof agreed with the king; but in the Lent of the same year the king

ordered all the monasteries in England to be plundered. In the same year came King Sweyne from Denmark

into the Humber; and the landsmen came to meet him, and made a treaty with him; thinking that he would

overrun the land. Then came into Ely Christien, the Danish bishop, and Earl Osbern, and the Danish

domestics with them; and the English people from all the fenlands came to them; supposing that they should

win all that land. Then the monks of Peterborough heard say, that their own men would plunder the minster;

namely Hereward and his gang: because they understood that the king had given the abbacy to a French

abbot, whose name was Thorold;  that he was a very stern man, and was then come into Stamford with all

his Frenchmen. Now there was a churchwarden, whose name was Yware; who took away by night all that he

could, testaments, masshackles, cantelcopes, and reefs, and such other small things, whatsoever he could;

and went early, before day, to the Abbot Thorold; telling him that he sought his protection, and informing

him how the outlaws were coming to Peterborough, and that he did all by advice of the monks. Early in the

morning came all the outlaws with many ships, resolving to enter the minster; but the monks withstood, so

that they could not come in. Then they laid on fire, and burned all the houses of the monks, and all the town

except one house. Then came they in through fire at the Bullhithe gate; where the monks met them, and

besought peace of them. But they regarded nothing. They went into the minster, climbed up to the holy rood,

took away the diadem from our Lord's head, all of pure gold, and seized the bracket that was underneath his

feet, which was all of red gold. They climbed up to the steeple, brought down the table that was hid there,

which was all of gold and silver, seized two golden shrines, and nine of silver, and took away fifteen large

crucifixes, of gold and of silver; in short, they seized there so much gold and silver, and so many treasures, in

money, in raiment, and in books, as no man could tell another; and said, that they did it from their attachment

to the minster. Afterwards they went to their ships, proceeded to Ely, and deposited there all the treasure. The

Danes, believing that they should overcome the Frenchmen, drove out all the monks; leaving there only one,

whose name was Leofwine Lang, who lay sick in the infirmary. Then came Abbot Thorold and eight times

twenty Frenchmen with him, all fullarmed. When he came thither, he found all within and without

consumed by fire, except the church alone; but the outlaws were all with the fleet, knowing that he would

come thither. This was done on the fourth day before the nones of June. The two kings, William and Sweyne,

were now reconciled; and the Danes went out of Ely with all the aforesaid treasure, and carried it away with

them. But when they came into the middle of the sea, there came a violent storm, and dispersed all the ships

wherein the treasures were. Some went to Norway, some to Ireland, some to Denmark. All that reached the

latter, consisted of the table, and some shrines, and some crucifixes, and many of the other treasures; which

they brought to a king's town, called , and deposited it all there in the church. Afterwards through their

own carelessness, and through their drunkenness, in one night the church and all that was therein was

consumed by fire. Thus was the minster of Peterborough burned and plundered. Almighty God have mercy

on it through his great goodness. Thus came the Abbot Thorold to Peterborough; and the monks too returned,

and performed the service of Christ in the church, which had before stood a full week without any kind of

rite. When Bishop Aylric heard it, he excommunicated all the men who that evil deed had done. There was a

great famine this year: and in the summer came the fleet in the north from the Humber into the Thames, and

lay there two nights, and made afterwards for Denmark. Earl Baldwin also died, and his son Arnulf

succeeded to the earldom. Earl William, in conjunction with the king of the Franks, was to be his guardian;

but Earl Robert came and slew his kinsman Arnulf and the earl, put the king to flight, and slew many

thousands of his men.

A.D. 1071. This year Earl Edwin and Earl Morkar fled out, (93) and roamed at random in woods and in

fields. Then went Earl Morkar to Ely by ship; but Earl Edwin was treacherously slain by his own men. Then

came Bishop Aylwine, and Siward Barn, and many hundred men with them, into Ely. When King William

heard that, then ordered he out a naval force and land force, and beset the land all about, and wrought a

bridge, and went in; and the naval force at the same time on the seaside. And the outlaws then all

surrendered; that was, Bishop Aylwine, and Earl Morkar, and all that were with them; except Hereward (94)

alone, and all those that would join him, whom he led out triumphantly. And the king took their ships, and

weapons, and many treasures; (95) and all the men he disposed of as he thought proper. Bishop Aylwine he


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part VI 88



Top




Page No 91


sent to Abingdon, where he died in the beginning of the winter.

A.D. 1072. This year King William led a naval force and a land force to Scotland, and beset that land on the

seaside with ships, whilst he led his landforce in at the Tweed; (96) but he found nothing there of any

value. King Malcolm, however, came, and made peace with King William, and gave hostages, and became

his man; whereupon the king returned home with all his force. This year died Bishop Aylric. He had been

invested Bishop of York; but that see was unjustly taken from him, and he then had the bishopric of Durham

given him; which he held as long as he chose, but resigned it afterwards, and retired to Peterborough minster;

where he abode twelve years. After that King William won England, then took he him from Peterborough,

and sent him to Westminster; where he died on the ides of October, and he is there buried, within the minster,

in the porch of St. Nicholas.

A.D. 1073. This year led King William an army, English and French, over sea, and won the district of Maine;

which the English very much injured by destroying the vineyards, burning the towns, and spoiling the land.

But they subdued it all into the hand of King William, and afterwards returned home to England.

A.D. 1074. This year King William went over sea to Normandy; and child Edgar came from Flanders into

Scotland on St. Grimbald's massday; where King Malcolm and his sister Margaret received him with much

pomp. At the same time sent Philip, the King of France, a letter to him, bidding him to come to him, and he

would give him the castle of Montreuil; that he might afterwards daily annoy his enemies. What then? King

Malcolm and his sister Margaret gave him and his men great presents, and many treasures; in skins

ornamented with purple, in pelisses made of martin skins, of greyskins, and of ermineskins, in palls, and

in vessels of gold and silver; and conducted him and his crew with great pomp from his territory. But in their

voyage evil befel them; for when they were out at sea, there came upon them such rough weather, and the

stormy sea and the strong wind drove them so violently on the shore, that all their ships burst, and they also

themselves came with difficulty to the land. Their treasure was nearly all lost, and some of his men also were

taken by the French; but he himself and his best men returned again to Scotland, some roughly travelling on

foot, and some miserably mounted. Then King Malcolm advised him to send to King William over sea, to

request his friendship, which he did; and the king gave it him, and sent after him. Again, therefore, King

Malcolm and his sister gave him and all his men numberless treasures, and again conducted him very

magnificently from their territory. The sheriff of York came to meet him at Durham, and went all the way

with him; ordering meat and fodder to be found for him at every castle to which they came, until they came

over sea to the king. Then King William received him with much pomp; and he was there afterwards in his

court, enjoying such rights as he confirmed to him by law.

A.D. 1075. This year King William gave Earl Ralph the daughter of William FitzOsborne to wife. This

same Ralph was British on his mother's side; but his father, whose name was also Ralph, was English; and

born in Norfolk. The king therefore gave his son the earldom of Norfolk and Suffolk; and he then led the

bride to Norwich. There was that brideale The source of man's bale. There was Earl Roger, and Earl

Waltheof, and bishops, and abbots; who there resolved, that they would drive the king out of the realm of

England. But it was soon told the king in Normandy how it was determined. It was Earl Roger and Earl Ralph

who were the authors of that plot; and who enticed the Britons to them, and sent eastward to Denmark after a

fleet to assist them. Roger went westward to his earldom, and collected his people there, to the king's

annoyance, as he thought; but it was to the great disadvantage of himself. He was however prevented. Ralph

also in his earldom would go forth with his people; but the castlemen that were in England and also the

people of the land, came against him, and prevented him from doing anything. He escaped however to the

ships at Norwich. (97) And his wife was in the castle; which she held until peace was made with her; when

she went out of England, with all her men who wished to join her. The king afterwards came to England, and

seized Earl Roger, his relative, and put him in prison. And Earl Waltheof went over sea, and bewrayed

himself; but he asked forgiveness, and proffered gifts of ransom. The king, however, let him off lightly, until

he (98) came to England; when he had him seized. Soon after that came east from Denmark two hundred


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part VI 89



Top




Page No 92


ships; wherein were two captains, Cnute Swainson, and Earl Hacco; but they durst not maintain a fight with

King William. They went rather to York, and broke into St. Peter's minster, and took therein much treasure,

and so went away. They made for Flanders over sea; but they all perished who were privy to that design; that

was, the son of Earl Hacco, and many others with him. This year died the Lady Edgitha, who was the relict of

King Edward, seven nights before Christmas, at Winchester; and the king caused her to be brought to

Westminster with great pomp; and he laid her with King Edward, her lord. And the king was then at

Westminster, at midwinter; where all the Britons were condemned who were at the brideale at Norwich.

Some were punished with blindness; some were driven from the land; and some were towed to Scandinavia.

So were the traitors of King William subdued.

A.D. 1076. This year died Sweyne, King of Denmark; and Harold his son took to the kingdom. And the king

gave the abbacy of Westminster to Abbot Vitalis, who had been Abbot of Bernay. This year also was Earl

Waltheof beheaded at Winchester, on the mass day of St. Petronilla; (99) and his body was carried to

Croyland, where he lies buried. King William now went over sea, and led his army to Brittany, and beset the

castle of Dol; but the Bretons defended it, until the king came from France; whereupon William departed

thence, having lost there both men and horses, and many of his treasures.

A.D. 1077. This year were reconciled the king of the Franks and William, King of England. But it continued

only a little while. This year was London burned, one night before the Assumption of St. Mary, so terribly as

it never was before, since it was built. This year the moon was eclipsed three nights before Candlemas; and in

the same year died Aylwy, the prudent Abbot of Evesham, on the fourteenth day before the calends of March,

on the massday of St. Juliana; and Walter was appointed abbot in his stead; and Bishop Herman also died,

on the tenth day before the calends of March, who was Bishop in Berkshire, and in Wiltshire, and in

Dorsetshire. This year also King Malcolm won the mother of Malslaythe.... and all his best men, and all his

treasures, and his cattle; and he himself not easily escaped.... This year also was the dry summer; and wild

fire came upon many shires, and burned many towns; and also many cities were ruined thereby.

A.D. 1079. This year Robert, the son of King William, deserted from his father to his uncle Robert in

Flanders; because his father would not let him govern his earldom in Normandy; which he himself, and also

King Philip with his permission, had given him. The best men that were in the land also had sworn oaths of

allegiance to him, and taken him for their lord. This year, therefore, Robert fought with his father, without

Normandy, by a castle called Gerberoy; and wounded him in the hand; and his horse, that he sat upon, was

killed under him; and he that brought him another was killed there right with a dart. That was Tookie

Wiggodson. Many were there slain, and also taken. His son William too was there wounded; but Robert

returned to Flanders. We will not here, however, record any more injury that he did his father. This year came

King Malcolm from Scotland into England, betwixt the two festivals of St. Mary, with a large army, which

plundered Northumberland till it came to the Tine, and slew many hundreds of men, and carried home much

coin, and treasure, and men in captivity.

A.D. 1080. This year was Bishop Walker slain in Durham, at a council; and an hundred men with him,

French and Flemish. He himself was born in Lorrain. This did the Northumbrians in the month of May. (100)

A.D. 1081. This year the king led an army into Wales, and there freed many hundreds of men.

A.D. 1082. This year the king seized Bishop Odo; and this year also was a great famine.

A.D. 1083. This year arose the tumult at Glastonbury betwixt the Abbot Thurstan and his monks. It

proceeded first from the abbot's want of wisdom, that he misgoverned his monks in many things. But the

monks meant well to him; and told him that he should govern them rightly, and love them, and they would be

faithful and obedient to him. The abbot, however, would hear nothing of this; but evil entreated them, and

threatened them worse. One day the abbot went into the chapterhouse, and spoke against the monks, and


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part VI 90



Top




Page No 93


attempted to mislead them; (101) and sent after some laymen, and they came fullarmed into the chapter

house upon the monks. Then were the monks very much afraid (102) of them, and wist not what they were to

do, but they shot forward, and some ran into the church, and locked the doors after them. But they followed

them into the minster, and resolved to drag them out, so that they durst not go out. A rueful thing happened

on that day. The Frenchmen broke into the choir, and hurled their weapons toward the altar, where the monks

were; and some of the knights went upon the upper floor, (103) and shot their arrows downward incessantly

toward the sanctuary; so that on the crucifix that stood above the altar they stuck many arrows. And the

wretched monks lay about the altar, and some crept under, and earnestly called upon God, imploring his

mercy, since they could not obtain any at the hands of men. What can we say, but that they continued to shoot

their arrows; whilst the others broke down the doors, and came in, and slew (104) some of the monks to

death, and wounded many therein; so that the blood came from the altar upon the steps, and from the steps on

the floor. Three there were slain to death, and eighteen wounded. And in this same year departed Matilda,

queen of King William, on the day after AllHallowmass. And in the same year also, after midwinter, the

king ordained a large and heavy contribution (105) over all England; that was, upon each hide of land, two

and seventy pence.

A.D. 1084. In this year died Wulfwold, Abbot of Chertsey, on the thirteenth day before the calends of May.

A.D. 1085. In this year men reported, and of a truth asserted, that Cnute, King of Denmark, son of King

Sweyne, was coming hitherward, and was resolved to win this land, with the assistance of Robert, Earl of

Flanders; (106) for Cnute had Robert's daughter. When William, King of England, who was then resident in

Normandy (for he had both England and Normandy), understood this, he went into England with so large an

army of horse and foot, from France and Brittany, as never before sought this land; so that men wondered

how this land could feed all that force. But the king left the army to shift for themselves through all this land

amongst his subjects, who fed them, each according to his quota of land. Men suffered much distress this

year; and the king caused the land to be laid waste about the sea coast; that, if his foes came up, they might

not have anything on which they could very readily seize. But when the king understood of a truth that his

foes were impeded, and could not further their expedition, (107) then let he some of the army go to their own

land; but some he held in this land over the winter. Then, at the midwinter, was the king in Glocester with his

council, and held there his court five days. And afterwards the archbishop and clergy had a synod three days.

There was Mauritius chosen Bishop of London, William of Norfolk, and Robert of Cheshire. These were all

the king's clerks. After this had the king a large meeting, and very deep consultation with his council, about

this land; how it was occupied, and by what sort of men. Then sent he his men over all England into each

shire; commissioning them to find out "How many hundreds of hides were in the shire, what land the king

himself had, and what stock upon the land; or, what dues he ought to have by the year from the shire." Also

he commissioned them to record in writing, "How much land his archbishops had, and his diocesan bishops,

and his abbots, and his earls;" and though I may be prolix and tedious, "What, or how much, each man had,

who was an occupier of land in England, either in land or in stock, and how much money it were worth." So

very narrowly, indeed, did he commission them to trace it out, that there was not one single hide, nor a yard

(108) of land, nay, moreover (it is shameful to tell, though he thought it no shame to do it), not even an ox,

nor a cow, nor a swine was there left, that was not set down in his writ. And all the recorded particulars were

afterwards brought to him. (109)

A.D. 1086. This year the king bare his crown, and held his court, in Winchester at Easter; and he so arranged,

that he was by the Pentecost at Westminster, and dubbed his son Henry a knight there. Afterwards he moved

about so that he came by Lammas to Sarum; where he was met by his councillors; and all the landsmen that

were of any account over all England became this man's vassals as they were; and they all bowed themselves

before him, and became his men, and swore him oaths of allegiance that they would against all other men be

faithful to him. Thence he proceeded into the Isle of Wight; because he wished to go into Normandy, and so

he afterwards did; though he first did according to his custom; he collected a very large sum from his people,

wherever he could make any demand, whether with justice or otherwise. Then he went into Normandy; and


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part VI 91



Top




Page No 94


Edgar Etheling, the relation of King Edward, revolted from him, for he received not much honour from him;

but may the Almighty God give him honour hereafter. And Christina, the sister of the etheling, went into the

monastery of Rumsey, and received the holy veil. And the same year there was a very heavy season, and a

swinkful and sorrowful year in England, in murrain of cattle, and corn and fruits were at a stand, and so much

untowardness in the weather, as a man may not easily think; so tremendous was the thunder and lightning,

that it killed many men; and it continually grew worse and worse with men. May God Almighty better it

whenever it be his will.

A.D. 1087. After the birth of our Lord and Saviour Christ, one thousand and eightyseven winters; in the one

and twentieth year after William began to govern and direct England, as God granted him, was a very heavy

and pestilent season in this land. Such a sickness came on men, that full nigh every other man was in the

worst disorder, that is, in the diarrhoea; and that so dreadfully, that many men died in the disorder.

Afterwards came, through the badness of the weather as we before mentioned, so great a famine over all

England, that many hundreds of men died a miserable death through hunger. Alas! how wretched and how

rueful a time was there! When the poor wretches lay full nigh driven to death prematurely, and afterwards

came sharp hunger, and dispatched them withall! Who will not be penetrated with grief at such a season? or

who is so hardhearted as not to weep at such misfortune? Yet such things happen for folks' sins, that they will

not love God and righteousness. So it was in those days, that little righteousness was in this land with any

men but with the monks alone, wherever they fared well. The king and the head men loved much, and

overmuch, covetousness in gold and in silver; and recked not how sinfully it was got, provided it came to

them. The king let his land at as high a rate as he possibly could; then came some other person, and bade

more than the former one gave, and the king let it to the men that bade him more. Then came the third, and

bade yet more; and the king let it to hand to the men that bade him most of all: and he recked not how very

sinfully the stewards got it of wretched men, nor how many unlawful deeds they did; but the more men spake

about right law, the more unlawfully they acted. They erected unjust tolls, and many other unjust things they

did, that are difficult to reckon. Also in the same year, before harvest, the holy minster of St. Paul, the

episcopal see in London, was completely burned, with many other minsters, and the greatest part, and the

richest of the whole city. So also, about the same time, full nigh each headport in all England was entirely

burned. Alas! rueful and woeful was the fate of the year that brought forth so many misfortunes. In the same

year also, before the Assumption of St. Mary, King William went from Normandy into France with an army,

and made war upon his own lord Philip, the king, and slew many of his men, and burned the town of Mante,

and all the holy minsters that were in the town; and two holy men that served God, leading the life of

anachorets, were burned therein. This being thus done, King William returned to Normandy. Rueful was the

thing he did; but a more rueful him befel. How more rueful? He fell sick, and it dreadfully ailed him. What

shall I say? Sharp death, that passes by neither rich men nor poor, seized him also. He died in Normandy, on

the next day after the Nativity of St. Mary, and he was buried at Caen in St. Stephen's minster, which he had

formerly reared, and afterwards endowed with manifold gifts. Alas! how false and how uncertain is this

world's weal! He that was before a rich king, and lord of many lands, had not then of all his land more than a

space of seven feet! and he that was whilom enshrouded in gold and gems, lay there covered with mould! He

left behind him three sons; the eldest, called Robert, who was earl in Normandy after him; the second, called

William, who wore the crown after him in England; and the third, called Henry, to whom his father

bequeathed immense treasure. If any person wishes to know what kind of man he was, or what honour he

had, or of how many lands he was lord, then will we write about him as well as we understand him: we who

often looked upon him, and lived sometime in his court. This King William then that we speak about was a

very wise man, and very rich; more splendid and powerful than any of his predecessors were. He was mild to

the good men that loved God, and beyond all measure severe to the men that gainsayed his will. On that same

spot where God granted him that he should gain England, he reared a mighty minster, and set monks therein,

and well endowed it. In his days was the great monastery in Canterbury built, and also very many others over

all England. This land was moreover well filled with monks, who modelled their lives after the rule of St.

Benedict. But such was the state of Christianity in his time, that each man followed what belonged to his

profession  he that would. He was also very dignified. Thrice he bare his crown each year, as oft as he was


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part VI 92



Top




Page No 95


in England. At Easter he bare it in Winchester, at Pentecost in Westminster, at midwinter in Glocester. And

then were with him all the rich men over all England; archbishops and diocesan bishops, abbots and earls,

thanes and knights. So very stern was he also and hot, that no man durst do anything against his will. He had

earls in his custody, who acted against his will. Bishops he hurled from their bishoprics, and abbots from

their abbacies, and thanes into prison. At length he spared not his own brother Odo, who was a very rich

bishop in Normandy. At Baieux was his episcopal stall; and he was the foremost man of all to aggrandise the

king. He had an earldom in England; and when the king was in Normandy, then was he the mightiest man in

this land. Him he confined in prison. But amongst other things is not to be forgotten that good peace that he

made in this land; so that a man of any account might go over his kingdom unhurt with his bosom full of

gold. No man durst slay another, had he never so much evil done to the other; and if any churl lay with a

woman against her will, he soon lost the limb that he played with. He truly reigned over England; and by his

capacity so thoroughly surveyed it, that there was not a hide of land in England that he wist not who had it, or

what it was worth, and afterwards set it down in his book. (110) The land of the Britons was in his power;

and he wrought castles therein; and ruled Anglesey withal. So also he subdued Scotland by his great strength.

As to Normandy, that was his native land; but he reigned also over the earldom called Maine; and if he might

have yet lived two years more, he would have won Ireland by his valour, and without any weapons.

Assuredly in his time had men much distress, and very many sorrows. Castles he let men build, and

miserably swink the poor. The king himself was so very rigid; and extorted from his subjects many marks of

gold, and many hundred pounds of silver; which he took of his people, for little need, by right and by unright.

He was fallen into covetousness, and greediness he loved withal. He made many deerparks; and he

established laws therewith; so that whosoever slew a hart, or a hind, should be deprived of his eyesight. As he

forbade men to kill the harts, so also the boars; and he loved the tall deer as if he were their father. Likewise

he decreed by the hares, that they should go free. His rich men bemoaned it, and the poor men shuddered at it.

But he was so stern, that he recked not the hatred of them all; for they must follow withal the king's will, if

they would live, or have land, or possessions, or even his peace. Alas! that any man should presume so to

puff himself up, and boast o'er all men. May the Almighty God show mercy to his soul, and grant him

forgiveness of his sins! These things have we written concerning him, both good and evil; that men may

choose the good after their goodness, and flee from the evil withal, and go in the way that leadeth us to the

kingdom of heaven. Many things may we write that were done in this same year. So it was in Denmark, that

the Danes, a nation that was formerly accounted the truest of all, were turned aside to the greatest untruth,

and to the greatest treachery that ever could be. They chose and bowed to King Cnute, and swore him oaths,

and afterwards dastardly slew him in a church. It happened also in Spain, that the heathens went and made

inroads upon the Christians, and reduced much of the country to their dominion. But the king of the

Christians, Alphonzo by name, sent everywhere into each land, and desired assistance. And they came to his

support from every land that was Christian; and they went and slew or drove away all the heathen folk, and

won their land again, through God's assistance. In this land also, in the same year, died many rich men;

Stigand, Bishop of Chichester, and the Abbot of St. Augustine, and the Abbot of Bath, and the Abbot of

Pershore, and the lord of them all, William, King of England, that we spoke of before. After his death his son,

called William also as the father, took to the kingdom, and was blessed to king by Archbishop Landfranc at

Westminster three days ere Michaelmas day. And all the men in England submitted to him, and swore oaths

to him. This being thus done, the king went to Winchester, and opened the treasure house, and the treasures

that his father had gathered, in gold, and in silver, and in vases, and in palls, and in gems, and in many other

valuable things that are difficult to enumerate. Then the king did as his father bade him ere he was dead; he

there distributed treasures for his father's soul to each monastery that was in England; to some ten marks of

gold, to some six, to each upland (111) church sixty pence. And into each shire were sent a hundred pounds

of money to distribute amongst poor men for his soul. And ere he departed, he bade that they should release

all the men that were in prison under his power. And the king was on the midwinter in London.

A.D. 1088. In this year was this land much stirred, and filled with great treachery; so that the richest

Frenchmen that were in this land would betray their lord the king, and would have his brother Robert king,

who was earl in Normandy. In this design was engaged first Bishop Odo, and Bishop Gosfrith, and William,


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part VI 93



Top




Page No 96


Bishop of Durham. So well did the king by the bishop [Odo] that all England fared according to his counsel,

and as he would. And the bishop thought to do by him as Judas Iscariot did by our Lord. And Earl Roger was

also of this faction; and much people was with him all Frenchmen. This conspiracy was formed in Lent. As

soon as Easter came, then went they forth, and harrowed, and burned, and wasted the king's farms; and they

despoiled the lands of all the men that were in the king's service. And they each of them went to his castle,

and manned it, and provisioned it as well as they could. Bishop Gosfrith, and Robert the peace breaker,

went to Bristol, and plundered it, and brought the spoil to the castle. Afterwards they went out of the castle,

and plundered Bath, and all the land thereabout; and all the honor (112) of Berkeley they laid waste. And the

men that eldest were of Hereford, and all the shire forthwith, and the men of Shropshire, with much people of

Wales, came and plundered and burned in Worcestershire, until they came to the city itself, which it was their

design to set on fire, and then to rifle the minster, and win the king's castle to their hands. The worthy Bishop

Wulfstan, seeing these things, was much agitated in his mind, because to him was betaken the custody of the

castle. Nevertheless his hired men went out of the castle with few attendants, and, through God's mercy and

the bishop's merits, slew or took five hundred men, and put all the others to flight. The Bishop of Durham did

all the harm that he could over all by the north. Roger was the name of one of them; (113) who leaped into

the castle at Norwich, and did yet the worst of all over all that land. Hugh also was one, who did nothing

better either in Leicestershire or in Northamptonshire. The Bishop Odo being one, though of the same family

from which the king himself was descended, went into Kent to his earldom, and greatly despoiled it; and

having laid waste the lands of the king and of the archbishop withal, he brought the booty into his castle at

Rochester. When the king understood all these things, and what treachery they were employing against him,

then was he in his mind much agitated. He then sent after Englishmen, described to them his need, earnestly

requested their support, and promised them the best laws that ever before were in this land; each unright guild

he forbade, and restored to the men their woods and chaces. But it stood no while. The Englishmen however

went to the assistance of the king their lord. They advanced toward Rochester, with a view to get possession

of the Bishop Odo; for they thought, if they had him who was at first the head of the conspiracy, they might

the better get possession of all the others. They came then to the castle at Tunbridge; and there were in the

castle the knights of Bishop Odo, and many others who were resolved to hold it against the king. But the

Englishmen advanced, and broke into the castle, and the men that were therein agreed with the king. The king

with his army went toward Rochester. And they supposed that the bishop was therein; but it was made known

to the king that the bishop was gone to the castle at Pevensea. And the king with his army went after, and

beset the castle about with a very large force full six weeks. During this time the Earl of Normandy, Robert,

the king's brother, gathered a very considerable force, and thought to win England with the support of those

men that were in this land against the king. And he sent some of his men to this land, intending to come

himself after. But the Englishmen that guarded the sea lighted upon some of the men, and slew them, and

drowned more than any man could tell. When provisions afterwards failed those within the castle, they

earnestly besought peace, and gave themselves up to the king; and the bishop swore that he would depart out

of England, and no more come on this land, unless the king sent after him, and that he would give up the

castle at Rochester. Just as the bishop was going with an intention to give up the castle, and the king had sent

his men with him, then arose the men that were in the castle, and took the bishop and the king's men, and put

them into prison. In the castle were some very good knights; Eustace the Young, and the three sons of Earl

Roger, and all the best born men that were in this land or in Normandy. When the king understood this thing,

then went he after with the army that he had there, and sent over all England. and bade that each man that was

faithful should come to him, French and English, from seaport and from upland. Then came to him much

people; and he went to Rochester, and beset the castle, until they that were therein agreed, and gave up the

castle. The Bishop Odo with the men that were in the castle went over sea, and the bishop thus abandoned the

dignity that he had in this land. The king afterwards sent an army to Durham, and allowed it to beset the

castle, and the bishop agreed, and gave up the castle, and relinquished his bishopric, and went to Normandy.

Many Frenchmen also abandoned their lands, and went over sea; and the king gave their lands to the men that

were faithful to him.


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part VI 94



Top




Page No 97


A.D. 1089. In this year the venerable father and favourer of monks, Archbishop Landfranc, departed this life;

but we hope that he is gone to the heavenly kingdom. There was also over all England much earthstirring on

the third day before the ides of August, and it was a very late year in corn, and in every kind of fruits, so that

many men reaped their corn about Martinmas, and yet later.

A.D. 1090. Indiction XIII. These things thus done, just as we have already said above, by the king, and by his

brother and by this men, the king was considering how he might wreak his vengeance on his brother Robert,

harass him most, and win Normandy of him. And indeed through his craft, or through bribery, he got

possession of the castle at St. Valeri, and the haven; and so he got possession of that at Albemarle. And

therein he set his knights; and they did harm to the land in harrowing and burning. After this he got

possession of more castles in the land; and therein lodged his horsemen. When the Earl of Normandy, Robert,

understood that his sworn men deceived him, and gave up their castles to do him harm, then sent he to his

lord, Philip, king of the Franks; and he came to Normandy with a large army, and the king and the earl with

an immense force beset the castle about, wherein were the men of the King of England. But the King William

of England sent to Philip, king of the Franks; and he for his love, or for his great treasure, abandoned thus his

subject the Earl Robert and his land; and returned again to France, and let them so remain. And in the midst

of these things this land was much oppressed by unlawful exactions and by many other misfortunes.

A.D. 1091. In this year the King William held his court at Christmas in Westminster, and thereafter at

Candlemas he went, for the annoyance of his brother, out of England into Normandy. Whilst he was there,

their reconciliation took place, on the condition, that the earl put into his hands Feschamp, and the earldom of

Ou, and Cherbourg; and in addition to this, that the king's men should be secure in the castles that they had

won against the will of the earl. And the king in return promised him those many [castles] that their father

had formerly won, and also to reduce those that had revolted from the earl, also all that his father had there

beyond, except those that he had then given the king, and that all those, that in England before for the earl

had lost their land, should have it again by this treaty, and that the earl should have in England just so much

as was specified in this agreement. And if the earl died without a son by lawful wedlock, the king should be

heir of all Normandy; and by virtue of this same treaty, if the king died, the earl should be heir of all England.

To this treaty swore twelve of the best men of the king's side, and twelve of the earl's, though it stood but a

little while afterwards. In the midst of this treaty was Edgar Etheling deprived of the land that the earl had

before permitted him to keep in hand; and he went out of Normandy to the king, his sister's husband, in

Scotland, and to his sister. Whilst the King William was out of England, the King Malcolm of Scotland came

hither into England, and overran a great deal of it, until the good men that governed this land sent an army

against him and repulsed him. When the King William in Normandy heard this, then prepared he his

departure, and came to England, and his brother, the Earl Robert, with him; and he soon issued an order to

collect a force both naval and military; but the naval force, ere it could come to Scotland, perished almost

miserably, a few days before St. Michael's mass. And the king and his brother proceeded with the landforce;

but when the King Malcolm heard that they were resolved to seek him with an army, he went with his force

out of Scotland into Lothaine in England, and there abode. When the King William came near with his army,

then interceded between them Earl Robert, and Edgar Etheling, and so made the peace of the kings, that the

King Malcolm came to our king, and did homage, (114) promising all such obedience as he formerly paid to

his father; and that he confirmed with an oath. And the King William promised him in land and in all things

whatever he formerly had under his father. In this settlement was also Edgar Etheling united with the king.

And the kings then with much satisfaction departed; yet that stood but a little while. And the Earl Robert

tarried here full nigh until Christmas with the king, and during this time found but little of the truth of their

agreement; and two days before that tide he took ship in the Isle of Wight, and went into Normandy, and

Edgar Etheling with him.

A.D. 1092. In this year the King William with a large army went north to Carlisle, and restored the town, and

reared the castle, and drove out Dolphin that before governed the land, and set his own men in the castle, and

then returned hither southward. And a vast number of rustic people with wives and with cattle he sent thither,


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part VI 95



Top




Page No 98


to dwell there in order to till the land.

A.D. 1093. In this year, during Lent, was the King William at Glocester so sick, that he was by all reported

dead. And in his illness he made many good promises to lead his own life aright; to grant peace and

protection to the churches of God, and never more again with fee to sell; to have none but righteous laws

amongst his people. The archbishopric of Canterbury, that before remained in his own hand, he transferred to

Anselm, who was before Abbot of Bec; to Robert his chancellor the bishopric of Lincoln; and to many

minsters he gave land; but that he afterwards took away, when he was better, and annulled all the good laws

that he promised us before. Then after this sent the King of Scotland, and demanded the fulfilment of the

treaty that was promised him. And the King William cited him to Glocester, and sent him hostages to

Scotland; and Edgar Etheling, afterwards, and the men returned, that brought him with great dignity to the

king. But when he came to the king, he could not be considered worthy either of our king's speech, or of the

conditions that were formerly promised him. For this reason therefore they parted with great dissatisfaction,

and the King Malcolm returned to Scotland. And soon after he came home, he gathered his army, and came

harrowing into England with more hostility than behoved him; and Robert, the Earl of Northumberland,

surrounded him unawares with his men, and slew him. Morel of Barnborough slew him, who was the earl's

steward, and a baptismal friend (115) of King Malcolm. With him was also slain Edward his son; who after

him should have been king, if he had lived. When the good Queen Margaret heard this  her most beloved

lord and son thus betrayed she was in her mind almost distracted to death. She with her priests went to

church, and performed her rites, and prayed before God, that she might give up the ghost. And the Scots then

chose (116) Dufenal to king, Malcolm's brother, and drove out all the English that formerly were with the

King Malcolm. When Duncan, King Malcolm's son, heard all that had thus taken place (he was then in the

King William's court, because his father had given him as a hostage to our king's father, and so he lived here

afterwards), he came to the king, and did such fealty as the king required at his hands; and so with his

permission went to Scotland, with all the support that he could get of English and French, and deprived his

uncle Dufenal of the kingdom, and was received as king. But the Scots afterwards gathered some force

together, and slew full nigh all his men; and he himself with a few made his escape. (117) Afterwards they

were reconciled, on the condition that he never again brought into the land English or French.

A.D. 1094. This year the King William held his court at Christmas in Glocester; and messengers came to him

thither from his brother Robert of Normandy; who said that his brother renounced all peace and conditions,

unless the king would fulfil all that they had stipulated in the treaty; and upon that he called him forsworn and

void of truth, unless he adhered to the treaty, or went thither and explained himself there, where the treaty

was formerly made and also sworn. Then went the king to Hastings at Candlemas; and whilst he there abode

waiting the weather, he let hallow the minster at Battel, and deprived Herbert Losang, the Bishop of Thetford,

of his staff; and thereafter about midLent went over sea into Normandy. After he came, thither, he and his

brother Robert, the earl, said that they should come together in peace (and so they did), and might be united.

Afterwards they came together with the same men that before made the treaty, and also confirmed it by oaths;

and all the blame of breaking the treaty they threw upon the king; but he would not confess this, nor even

adhere to the treaty; and for this reason they parted with much dissatisfaction. And the king afterwards won

the castle at Bures, and took the earl's men therein; some of whom he sent hither to this land. On the other

hand the earl, with the assistance of the King of France, won the castle at Argence, and took therein Roger of

Poitou, (118) and seven hundred of the king's knights with him; and afterwards that at Hulme; and oft readily

did either of them burn the towns of the other, and also took men. Then sent the king hither to this land, and

ordered twenty thousand Englishmen to be sent out to Normandy to his assistance; but when they came to

sea, they then had orders to return, and to pay to the king's behoof the fee that they had taken; which was half

a pound each man; and they did so. And the earl after this, with the King of France, and with all that he could

gather together, went through the midst of Normandy, towards Ou, where the King William was, and thought

to besiege him within; and so they advanced until they came to Luneville. There was the King of France

through cunning turned aside; and so afterwards all the army dispersed. In the midst of these things the King

William sent after his brother Henry, who was in the castle at Damfront; but because he could not go through


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part VI 96



Top




Page No 99


Normandy with security, he sent ships after him, and Hugh, Earl of Chester. When, however, they should

have gone towards Ou where the king was, they went to England, and came up at Hamton, (119) on the eve

of the feast of All Saints, and here afterwards abode; and at Christmas they were in London. In this same year

also the Welshmen gathered themselves together, and with the French that were in Wales, or in the

neighbourhood, and had formerly seized their land, stirred up war, and broke into many fastnesses and

castles, and slew many men. And when their followers had increased, they divided themselves into larger

parties. With some part of them fought Hugh, Earl of Shropshire, (120) and put them to flight. Nevertheless

the other part of them all this year omitted no evil that they could do. This year also the Scots ensnared their

king, Duncan, and slew him; and afterwards, the second time, took his uncle Dufenal to king, through whose

instruction and advice he was betrayed to death.

A.D. 1095. In this year was the King William the first four days of Christmas at Whitsand, and after the

fourth day came hither, and landed at Dover. And Henry, the king's brother, abode in this land until Lent, and

then went over sea to Normandy, with much treasure, on the king's behalf, against their brother, Earl Robert,

and frequently fought against the earl, and did him much harm, both in land and in men. And then at Easter

held the king his court in Winchester; and the Earl Robert of Northumberland would not come to court. And

the king was much stirred to anger with him for this, and sent to him, and bade him harshly, if he would be

worthy of protection, that he would come to court at Pentecost. In this year was Easter on the eighth day

before the calends of April; and upon Easter, on the night of the feast of St Ambrose, that is, the second

before the nones of April, (121) nearly over all this land, and almost all the night, numerous and manifold

stars were seen to fall from heaven; not by one or two, but so thick in succession, that no man could tell it.

Hereafter at Pentecost was the king at Windsor, and all his council with him, except the Earl of

Northumberland; for the king would neither give him hostages, nor own upon truth, that he might come and

go with security. And the king therefore ordered his army, and went against the earl to Northumberland; and

soon after he came thither, he won many and nearly all the best of the earl's clan in a fortress, and put them

into custody; and the castle at Tinemouth he beset until he won it, and the earl's brother therein, and all that

were with him; and afterwards went to Bamborough, and beset the earl therein. But when the king saw that he

could not win it, then ordered he his men to make a castle before Bamborough, and called it in his speech

"Malveisin"; that is in English, "Evil Neighbour". And he fortified it strongly with his men, and afterwards

went southward. Then, soon after that the king was gone south, went the earl one night out of Bamborough

towards Tinemouth; but they that were in the new castle were aware of him, and went after him, and fought

him, and wounded him, and afterwards took him. And of those that were with him some they slew, and some

they took alive. Among these things it was made known to the king, that the Welshmen in Wales had broken

into a castle called Montgomery, and slain the men of Earl Hugo, that should have held it. He therefore gave

orders to levy another force immediately, and after Michaelmas went into Wales, and shifted his forces, and

went through all that land, so that the army came all together by All Saints to Snowdon. But the Welsh

always went before into the mountains and the moors, that no man could come to them. The king then went

homeward; for he saw that he could do no more there this winter. When the king came home again, he gave

orders to take the Earl Robert of Northumberland, and lead him to Bamborough, and put out both his eyes,

unless they that were therein would give up the castle. His wife held it, and Morel who was steward, and also

his relative. Through this was the castle then given up; and Morel was then in the king's court; and through

him were many both of the clergy and laity surrendered, who with their counsels had conspired against the

king. The king had before this time commanded some to be brought into prison, and afterwards had it very

strictly proclaimed over all this country, "That all who held land of the king, as they wished to be considered

worthy of protection, should come to court at the time appointed." And the king commanded that the Earl

Robert should be led to Windsor, and there held in the castle. Also in this same year, against Easter, came the

pope's nuncio hither to this land. This was Bishop Walter, a man of very good life, of the town of Albano;

and upon the day of Pentecost on the behalf of Pope Urban he gave Archbishop Anselm his pall, and he

received him at his archiepiscopal stall in Canterbury. And Bishop Walter remained afterwards in this land a

great part of the year; and men then sent by him the Romescot, (122) which they had not done for many

years before. This same year also the weather was very unseasonable; in consequence of which throughout all


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part VI 97



Top




Page No 100


this land were all the fruits of the earth reduced to a moderate crop.

A.D. 1096. In this year held the King William his court at Christmas in Windsor; and William Bishop of

Durham died there on newyear's day; and on the octave of the Epiphany was the king and all his councillors

at Salisbury. There Geoffry Bainard challenged William of Ou, the king's relative, maintaining that he had

been in the conspiracy against the king. And he fought with him, and overcame him in single combat; and

after he was overcome, the king gave orders to put out his eyes, and afterwards to emasculate him; and his

steward, William by name, who was the son of his stepmother, the king commanded to be hanged on a

gibbet. Then was also Eoda, Earl of Champagne, the king's soninlaw, and many others, deprived of their

lands; whilst some were led to London, and there killed. This year also, at Easter, there was a very great stir

through all this nation and many others, on account of Urban, who was declared Pope, though he had nothing

of a see at Rome. And an immense multitude went forth with their wives and children, that they might make

war upon the heathens. Through this expedition were the king and his brother, Earl Robert, reconciled; so that

the king went over sea, and purchased all Normandy of him, on condition that they should be united. And the

earl afterwards departed; and with him the Earl of Flanders, and the Earl of Boulogne, and also many other

men of rank (123). And the Earl Robert, and they that went with him, passed the winter in Apulia; but of the

people that went by Hungary many thousands miserably perished there and by the way. And many dragged

themselves home rueful and hungerbitten on the approach of winter. This was a very heavytimed year

through all England, both through the manifold tributes, and also through the very heavytimed hunger that

severely oppressed this earth in the course of the year. In this year also the principal men who held this land,

frequently sent forces into Wales, and many men thereby grievously afflicted, producing no results but

destruction of men and waste of money.

A.D. 1097. In this year was the King William at Christmas in Normandy; and afterwards against Easter he

embarked for this land; for that he thought to hold his court at Winchester; but he was weatherbound until

Eastereve, when he first landed at Arundel; and for this reason held his court at Windsor. And thereafter

with a great army he went into Wales, and quickly penetrated that land with his forces, through some of the

Welsh who were come to him, and were his guides; and he remained in that country from midsummer nearly

until August, and suffered much loss there in men and in horses, and also in many other things. The

Welshmen, after they had revolted from the king, chose them many elders from themselves; one of whom

was called Cadwgan, (124) who was the worthiest of them, being brother's son to King Griffin. And when the

king saw that he could do nothing in furtherance of his will, he returned again into this land; and soon after

that he let his men build castles on the borders. Then upon the feast of St. Michael, the fourth day before the

nones of October, (125) appeared an uncommon star, shining in the evening, and soon hastening to set. It

(126) was seen southwest, and the ray that stood off from it was thought very long, shining southeast. And

it appeared on this wise nearly all the week. Many men supposed that it was a comet. Soon after this

Archbishop Anselm of Canterbury obtained leave (127) of the king (though it was contrary to the wishes of

the king, as men supposed), and went over sea; because he thought that men in this country did little

according to right and after his instruction. And the king thereafter upon St. Martin's mass went over sea into

Normandy; but whilst he was waiting for fair weather, his court in the county where they lay, did the most

harm that ever court or army could do in a friendly and peaceable land. This was in all things a very

heavytimed year, and beyond measure laborious from badness of weather, both when men attempted to till

the land, and afterwards to gather the fruits of their tilth; and from unjust contributions they never rested.

Many counties also that were confined to London by work, were grievously oppressed on account of the wall

that they were building about the tower, and the bridge that was nearly all afloat, and the work of the king's

hall that they were building at Westminster; and many men perished thereby. Also in this same year soon

after Michaelmas went Edgar Etheling with an army through the king's assistance into Scotland, and with

hard fighting won that land, and drove out the King Dufnal; and his nephew Edgar, who was son of King

Malcolm and of Margaret the queen, he there appointed king in fealty to the King William; and afterwards

again returned to England.


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part VI 98



Top




Page No 101


A.D. 1098. In this year at Christmas was the King William in Normandy; and Walkelin, Bishop of

Winchester, and Baldwin, Abbot of St. Edmund's, within this tide (128) both departed. And in this year also

died Turold, Abbot of Peterborough. In the summer of this year also, at Finchamstead in Berkshire, a pool

welled with blood, as many true men said that should see it. And Earl Hugh was slain in Anglesey by foreign

pirates, (129) and his brother Robert was his heir, as he had settled it before with the king. Before

Michaelmas the heaven was of such an hue, as if it were burning, nearly all the night. This was a very

troublesome year through manifold impositions; and from the abundant rains, that ceased not all the year,

nearly all the tilth in the marsh lands perished.

A.D. 1099. This year was the King William at midwinter in Normandy, and at Easter came hither to land, and

at Pentecost held his court the first time in his new building at Westminster; and there he gave the bishopric

of Durham to Ranulf his chaplain, who had long directed and governed his councils over all England. And

soon after this he went over sea, and drove the Earl Elias out of Maine, which he reduced under his power,

and so by Michaelmas returned to this land. This year also, on the festival of St. Martin, the seaflood sprung

up to such a height, and did so much harm, as no man remembered that it ever did before. And this was the

first day of the new moon. And Osmond, Bishop of Salisbury, died in Advent.

A.D. 1100. In this year the King William held his court at Christmas in Glocester, and at Easter in

Winchester, and at Pentecost in Westminster. And at Pentecost was seen in Berkshire at a certain town blood

to well from the earth; as many said that should see it. And thereafter on the morning after Lammas day was

the King William shot in hunting, by an arrow from his own men, and afterwards brought to Winchester, and

buried in the cathedral. (130) This was in the thirteenth year after that he assumed the government. He was

very harsh and severe over his land and his men, and with all his neighbours; and very formidable; and

through the counsels of evil men, that to him were always agreeable, and through his own avarice, he was

ever tiring this nation with an army, and with unjust contributions. For in his days all right fell to the ground,

and every wrong rose up before God and before the world. God's church he humbled; and all the bishoprics

and abbacies, whose elders fell in his days, he either sold in fee, or held in his own hands, and let for a certain

sum; because he would be the heir of every man, both of the clergy and laity; so that on the day that he fell he

had in his own hand the archbishopric of Canterbury, with the bishopric of Winchester, and that of Salisbury,

and eleven abbacies, all let for a sum; and (though I may be tedious) all that was loathsome to God and

righteous men, all that was customary in this land in his time. And for this he was loathed by nearly all his

people, and odious to God, as his end testified:  for he departed in the midst of his unrighteousness,

without any power of repentance or recompense for his deeds. On the Thursday he was slain; and in the

morning afterwards buried; and after he was buried, the statesmen that were then nigh at hand, chose his

brother Henry to king. And he immediately (131) gave the bishopric of Winchester to William Giffard; and

afterwards went to London; and on the Sunday following, before the altar at Westminster, he promised God

and all the people, to annul all the unrighteous acts that took place in his brother's time, and to maintain the

best laws that were valid in any king's day before him. And after this the Bishop of London, Maurice,

consecrated him king; and all in this land submitted to him, and swore oaths, and became his men. And the

king, soon after this, by the advice of those that were about him, allowed men to take the Bishop Ranulf of

Durham, and bring him into the Tower of London, and hold him there. Then, before Michaelmas, came the

Archbishop Anselm of Canterbury hither to this land; as the King Henry, by the advice of his ministers had

sent after him, because he had gone out of this land for the great wrongs that the King William did unto him.

And soon hereafter the king took him to wife Maud, daughter of Malcolm, King of Scotland, and of Margaret

the good queen, the relative of King Edward, and of the right royal (132) race of England. And on Martinmas

day she was publicly given to him with much pomp at Westminster, and the Archbishop Anselm wedded her

to him, and afterwards consecrated her queen. And the Archbishop Thomas of York soon hereafter died.

During the harvest of this same year also came the Earl Robert home into Normandy, and the Earl Robert of

Flanders, Eustace, Earl of Boulogne, from Jerusalem. And as soon as the Earl Robert came into Normandy,

he was joyfully received by all his people; except those of the castles that were garrisoned with the King

Henry's men. Against them he had many contests and struggles.


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part VI 99



Top




Page No 102


A.D. 1101. In this year at Christmas held the King Henry his court in Westminster, and at Easter in

Winchester. And soon thereafter were the chief men in this land in a conspiracy against the king; partly from

their own great infidelity, and also through the Earl Robert of Normandy, who with hostility aspired to the

invasion of this land. And the king afterwards sent ships out to sea, to thwart and impede his brother; but

some of them in the time of need fell back, and turned from the king, and surrendered themselves to the Earl

Robert. Then at midsummer went the king out to Pevensey with all his force against his brother, and there

awaited him. But in the meantime came the Earl Robert up at Portsmouth twelve nights before Lammas; and

the king with all his force came against him. But the chief men interceded between them, and settled the

brothers on the condition, "that the king should forego all that he held by main strength in Normandy against

the earl; and that all then in England should have their lands again, who had lost it before through the earl,

and Earl Eustace also all his patrimony in this land; and that the Earl Robert every year should receive from

England three thousand marks of silver; and particularly, that whichever of the brothers should survive the

other, he should be heir of all England and also of Normandy, except the deceased left an heir by lawful

wedlock." And this twelve men of the highest rank on either side then confirmed with an oath. And the earl

afterwards remained in this land till after Michaelmas; and his men did much harm wherever they went, the

while that the earl continued in this land. This year also the Bishop Ranulf at Candlemas burst out of the

Tower of London by night, where he was in confinement, and went into Normandy; through whose

contrivance and instigation mostly the Earl Robert this year sought this land with hostility.

Part VII

A.D. 1102. In this year at the Nativity was the King Henry at Westminster, and at Easter in Winchester. And

soon thereafter arose a dissention between the king and the Earl Robert of Belesme, who held in this land the

earldom of Shrewsbury, that his father, Earl Roger, had before, and much territory therewith both on this side

and beyond the sea. And the king went and beset the castle at Arundel; but when he could not easily win it,

he allowed men to make castles before it, and filled them with his men; and afterwards with all his army he

went to Bridgenorth, and there continued until he had the castle, and deprived the Earl Robert of his land, and

stripped him of all that he had in England. And the earl accordingly went over sea, and the army afterwards

returned home. Then was the king thereafter by Michaelmas at Westminster; and all the principal men in this

land, clerk, and laity. And the Archbishop Anselm held a synod of clergy; and there they established many

canons that belong to Christianity. And many, both French and English, were there deprived of their staves

and dignity, which they either obtained with injustice, or enjoyed with dishonour. And in this same year, in

the week of the feast of Pentecost, there came thieves, some from Auvergne, (133) some from France, and

some from Flanders, and broke into the minster of Peterborough, and therein seized much property in gold

and in silver; namely, roods, and chalices, and candlesticks.

A.D. 1103. In this year, at midwinter, was the King Henry at Westminster. And soon afterwards departed the

Bishop William Giffard out of this land; because he would not against right accept his hood at the hands of

the Archbishop Gerard of York. And then at Easter held the king his court at Winchester, and afterwards

went the Archbishop Anselm from Canterbury to Rome, as was agreed between him and the king. This year

also came the Earl Robert of Normandy to speak with the king in this land; and ere he departed hence he

forgave the King Henry the three thousand marks that he was bound by treaty to give him each year. In this

year also at Hamstead in Berkshire was seen blood [to rise] from the earth. This was a very calamitous year in

this land, through manifold impositions, and through murrain of cattle, and deficiency of produce, not only in

corn, but in every kind of fruit. Also in the morning, upon the mass day of St. Laurence, the wind did so

much harm here on land to all fruits, as no man remembered that ever any did before. In this same year died

Matthias, Abbot of Peterborough, who lived no longer than one year after he was abbot. After Michaelmas,

on the twelfth day before the calends of November, he was in full procession received as abbot; and on the

same day of the next year he was dead at Glocester, and there buried.


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part VII 100



Top




Page No 103


A.D. 1104. In this year at Christmas held the King Henry his court at Westminster, and at Easter in

Winchester, and at Pentecost again at Westminster. This year was the first day of Pentecost on the nones of

June; and on the Tuesday following were seen four circles at midday about the sun, of a white hue, each

described under the other as if they were measured. All that saw it wondered; for they never remembered

such before. Afterwards were reconciled the Earl Robert of Normandy and Robert de Belesme, whom the

King Henry had before deprived of his lands, and driven from England; and through their reconciliation the

King of England and the Earl of Normandy became adversaries. And the king sent his folk over sea into

Normandy; and the headmen in that land received them, and with treachery to their lord, the earl, lodged

them in their castles, whence they committed many outrages on the earl in plundering and burning. This year

also William, Earl of Moreton (134) went from this land into Normandy; but after he was gone he acted

against the king; because the king stripped and deprived him of all that he had here in this land. It is not easy

to describe the misery of this land, which it was suffering through various and manifold wrongs and

impositions, that never failed nor ceased; and wheresoever the king went, there was full licence given to his

company to harrow and oppress his wretched people; and in the midst thereof happened oftentimes burnings

and manslaughter. All this was done to the displeasure of God, and to the vexation of this unhappy people.

A.D. 1105. In this year, on the Nativity, held the King Henry his court at Windsor; and afterwards in Lent he

went over sea into Normandy against his brother Earl Robert. And whilst he remained there he won of his

brother Caen and Baieux; and almost all the castles and the chief men in that land were subdued. And

afterwards by harvest he returned hither again; and that which he had won in Normandy remained afterwards

in peace and subjection to him; except that which was anywhere near the Earl William of Moretaine. This he

often demanded as strongly as he could for the loss of his land in this country. And then before Christmas

came Robert de Belesme hither to the king. This was a very calamitous year in this land, through loss of

fruits, and through the manifold contributions, that never ceased before the king went over [to Normandy], or

while he was there, or after he came back again.

A.D. 1106. In this year was the King Henry on the Nativity at Westminster, and there held his court; and at

that season Robert de Belesme went unreconciled from the king out of his land into Normandy. Hereafter

before Lent was the king at Northampton; and the Earl Robert his brother came thither from Normandy to

him; and because the king would not give him back that which he had taken from him in Normandy, they

parted in hostility; and the earl soon went over sea back again. In the first week of Lent, on the Friday, which

was the fourteenth before the calends of March, in the evening appeared an unusual star; and a long time

afterwards was seen every evening shining awhile. The star appeared in the southwest; it was thought little

and dark; but the train of light which stood from it was very bright, and appeared like an immense beam

shining northeast; and some evening this beam was seen as if it were moving itself forwards against the star.

Some said that they saw more of such unusual stars at this time; but we do not write more fully about it,

because we saw it not ourselves. On the night preceding the Lord's Supper, (135) that is, the Thursday before

Easter, were seen two moons in the heavens before day, the one in the east, and the other in the west, both

full; and it was the fourteenth day of the moon. At Easter was the king at Bath, and at Pentecost at Salisbury;

because he would not hold his court when he was beyond the sea. After this, and before August, went the

king over sea into Normandy; and almost all that were in that land submitted to his will, except Robert de

Belesme and the Earl of Moretaine, and a few others of the principal persons who yet held with the Earl of

Normandy. For this reason the king afterwards advanced with an army, and beset a castle of the Earl of

Moretaine, called Tenerchebrai. (136) Whilst the king beset the castle, came the Earl Robert of Normandy on

Michaelmas eve against the king with his army, and with him Robert of Belesme, and William, Earl of

Moretaine, and all that would be with them; but the strength and the victory were the king's. There was the

Earl of Normandy taken, and the Earl of Moretaine, and Robert of Stutteville, and afterwards sent to England,

and put into custody. Robert of Belesme was there put to flight, and William Crispin was taken, and many

others forthwith. Edgar Etheling, who a little before had gone over from the king to the earl, was also there

taken, whom the king afterwards let go unpunished. Then went the king over all that was in Normandy, and

settled it according to his will and discretion. This year also were heavy and sinful conflicts between the


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part VII 101



Top




Page No 104


Emperor of Saxony and his son, and in the midst of these conflicts the father fell, and the son succeeded to

the empire.

A.D. 1107. In this year at Christmas was the King Henry in Normandy; and, having disposed and settled that

land to his will, he afterwards came hither in Lent, and at Easter held his court at Windsor, and at Pentecost in

Westminster. And afterwards in the beginning of August he was again at Westminster, and there gave away

and settled the bishoprics and abbacies that either in England or in Normandy were without elders and

pastors. Of these there were so many, that there was no man who remembered that ever so many together

were given away before. And on this same occasion, among the others who accepted abbacies, Ernulf, who

before was prior at Canterbury, succeeded to the abbacy in Peterborough. This was nearly about seven years

after the King Henry undertook the kingdom, and the one and fortieth year since the Franks governed this

land. Many said that they saw sundry tokens in the moon this year, and its orb increasing and decreasing

contrary to nature. This year died Maurice, Bishop of London, and Robert, Abbot of St. Edmund's bury, and

Richard, Abbot of Ely. This year also died the King Edgar in Scotland, on the ides of January, and Alexander

his brother succeeded to the kingdom, as the King Henry granted him.

A.D. 1108. In this year was the King Henry on the Nativity at Westminster, and at Easter at Winchester, and

by Pentecost at Westminster again. After this, before August, he went into Normandy. And Philip, the King

of France, died on the nones of August, and his son Louis succeeded to the kingdom. And there were

afterwards many struggles between the King of France and the King of England, while the latter remained in

Normandy. In this year also died the Archbishop Girard of York, before Pentecost, and Thomas was

afterwards appointed thereto.

A.D. 1109. In this year was the King Henry at Christmas and at Easter in Normandy; and before Pentecost he

came to this land, and held his court at Westminster. There were the conditions fully settled, and the oaths

sworn, for giving his daughter (137) to the emperor. (138) This year were very frequent storms of thunder,

and very tremendous; and the Archbishop Anselm of Canterbury died on the eleventh day before the calends

of April; and the first day of Easter was on "Litania major".

A.D. 1110. In this year held the King Henry his court at Christmas in Westminster, and at Easter he was at

Marlborough, and at Pentecost he held his court for the first time in New Windsor. This year before Lent the

king sent his daughter with manifold treasures over sea, and gave her to the emperor. On the fifth night in the

month of May appeared the moon shining bright in the evening, and afterwards by little and little its light

diminished, so that, as soon as night came, (139) it was so completely extinguished withal, that neither light,

nor orb, nor anything at all of it was seen. And so it continued nearly until day, and then appeared shining full

and bright. It was this same day a fortnight old. All the night was the firmament very clear, and the stars over

all the heavens shining very bright. And the fruits of the trees were this night sorely nipt by frost. Afterwards,

in the month of June, appeared a star northeast, and its train stood before it towards the southwest. Thus

was it seen many nights; and as the night advanced, when it rose higher, it was seen going backward toward

the northwest. This year were deprived of their lands Philip of Braiose, and William Mallet, and William

Bainard. This year also died Earl Elias, who held Maine in feetail (140) of King Henry; and after his death

the Earl of Anjou succeeded to it, and held it against the king. This was a very calamitous year in this land,

through the contributions which the king received for his daughter's portion, and through the badness of the

weather, by which the fruits of the earth were very much marred, and the produce of the trees over all this

land almost entirely perished. This year men began first to work at the new minster at Chertsey.

A.D. 1111. This year the King Henry bare not his crown at Christmas, nor at Easter, nor at Pentecost. And in

August he went over sea into Normandy, on account of the broils that some had with him by the confines of

France, and chiefly on account of the Earl of Anjou, who held Maine against him. And after he came over

thither, many conspiracies, and burnings, and harrowings, did they between them. In this year died the Earl

Robert of Flanders, and his son Baldwin succeeded thereto. (141) This year was the winter very long, and the


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part VII 102



Top




Page No 105


season heavy and severe; and through that were the fruits of the earth sorely marred, and there was the

greatest murrain of cattle that any man could remember.

A.D. 1112. All this year remained the King Henry in Normandy on account of the broils that he had with

France, and with the Earl of Anjou, who held Maine against him. And whilst he was there, he deprived of

their lands the Earl of Evreux, and William Crispin, and drove them out of Normandy. To Philip of Braiose

he restored his land, who had been before deprived of it; and Robert of Belesme he suffered to be seized, and

put into prison. This was a very good year, and very fruitful, in wood and in field; but it was a very heavy

time and sorrowful, through a severe mortality amongst men.

A.D. 1113. In this year was the King Henry on the Nativity and at Easter and at Pentecost in Normandy. And

after that, in the summer, he sent hither Robert of Belesme into the castle at Wareham, and himself soon

(142) afterwards came hither to this land.

A.D. 1114. In this year held the King Henry his court on the Nativity at Windsor, and held no other court

afterwards during the year. And at midsummer he went with an army into Wales; and the Welsh came and

made peace with the king. And he let men build castles therein. And thereafter, in September, he went over

sea into Normandy. This year, in the latter end of May, was seen an uncommon star with a long train, shining

many nights. In this year also was so great an ebb of the tide everywhere in one day, as no man remembered

before; so that men went riding and walking over the Thames eastward of London bridge. This year were

very violent winds in the month of October; but it was immoderately rough in the night of the octave of St.

Martin; and that was everywhere manifest both in town and country. In this year also the king gave the

archbishopric of Canterbury to Ralph, who was before Bishop of Rochester; and Thomas, Archbishop of

York, died; and Turstein succeeded thereto, who was before the king's chaplain. About this same time went

the king toward the sea, and was desirous of going over, but the weather prevented him; then meanwhile sent

he his writ after the Abbot Ernulf of Peterborough, and bade that he should come to him quickly, for that he

wished to speak with him on an interesting subject. When he came to him, he appointed him to the bishopric

of Rochester; and the archbishops and bishops and all the nobility that were in England coincided with the

king. And he long withstood, but it availed nothing. And the king bade the archbishop that he should lead him

to Canterbury, and consecrate him bishop whether he would or not. (143) This was done in the town called

Bourne (144) on the seventeenth day before the calends of October. When the monks of Peterborough heard

of this, they felt greater sorrow than they had ever experienced before; because he was a very good and

amiable man, and did much good within and without whilst he abode there. God Almighty abide ever with

him. Soon after this gave the king the abbacy to a monk of Sieyes, whose name was John, through the

intreaty of the Archbishop of Canterbury. And soon after this the king and the Archbishop of Canterbury sent

him to Rome after the archbishop's pall; and a monk also with him, whose name was Warner, and the

Archdeacon John, the nephew of the archbishop. And they sped well there. This was done on the seventh day

before the calends Of October, in the town that is yclept Rowner. And this same day went the king on board

ship at Portsmouth.

A.D. 1115. This year was the King Henry on the Nativity in Normandy. And whilst he was there, he

contrived that all the head men in Normandy did homage and fealty to his son William, whom he had by his

queen. And after this, in the month of July, he returned to this land. This year was the winter so severe, with

snow and with frost, that no man who was then living ever remembered one more severe; in consequence of

which there was great destruction of cattle. During this year the Pope Paschalis sent the pall into this land to

Ralph, Archbishop of Canterbury; and he received it with great worship at his archiepiscopal stall in

Canterbury. It was brought hither from Rome by Abbot Anselm, who was the nephew of Archbishop Anselm,

and the Abbot John of Peterborough.

A.D. 1116. In this year was the King Henry on the Nativity at St. Alban's, where he permitted the

consecration of that monastery; and at Easter he was at Odiham. And there was also this year a very


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part VII 103



Top




Page No 106


heavytimed winter, strong and long, for cattle and for all things. And the king soon after Easter went over

sea into Normandy. And there were many conspiracies and robberies, and castles taken betwixt France and

Normandy. Most of this disturbance was because the King Henry assisted his nephew, Theobald de Blois,

who was engaged in a war against his lord, Louis, the King of France. This was a very vexatious and

destructive year with respect to the fruits of the earth, through the immoderate rains that fell soon after the

beginning of August, harassing and perplexing men till Candlemasday. This year also was so deficient in

mast, that there was never heard such in all this land or in Wales. This land and nation were also this year oft

and sorely swincked by the guilds which the king took both within the boroughs and without. In this same

year was consumed by fire the whole monastery of Peterborough, and all the buildings, except the

chapterhouse and the dormitory, and therewith also all the greater part of the town. All this happened on a

Friday, which was the second day before the nones of August.

A.D. 1117. All this year remained the King Henry, in Normandy, on account of the hostility of the King of

France and his other neighbours. And in the summer came the King of France and the Earl of Flanders with

him with an army into Normandy. And having stayed therein one night, they returned again in the morning

without fighting. But Normandy was very much afflicted both by the exactions and by the armies which the

King Henry collected against them. This nation also was severely oppressed through the same means,

namely, through manifold exactions. This year also, in the night of the calends of December, were

immoderate storms with thunder, and lightning, and rain, and hail. And in the night of the third day before the

ides of December was the moon, during a long time of the night, as if covered with blood, and afterwards

eclipsed. Also in the night of the seventeenth day before the calends of January, was the heaven seen very

red, as if it were burning. And on the octave of St. John the Evangelist was the great earthquake in Lombardy;

from the shock of which many minsters, and towers, and houses fell, and did much harm to men. This was a

very blighted year in corn, through the rains that scarcely ceased for nearly all the year. And the Abbot

Gilbert of Westminster died on the eighth day before the ides of December; and Faritz, Abbot of Abingdon,

on the seventh day before the calends of March. And in this same year....

A.D. 1118. All this year abode the King Henry in Normandy on account of the war of the King of France and

the Earl of Anjou, and the Earl of Flanders. And the Earl of Flanders was wounded in Normandy, and went so

wounded into Flanders. By this war was the king much exhausted, and he was a great loser both in land and

money. And his own men grieved him most, who often from him turned, and betrayed him; and going over to

his foes surrendered to them their castles, to the injury and disappointment of the king. All this England

dearly bought through the manifold guilds that all this year abated not. This year, in the week of the

Epiphany, there was one evening a great deal of lightning, and thereafter unusual thunder. And the Queen

Matilda died at Westminster on the calends of May; and there was buried. And the Earl Robert of Mellent

died also this year. In this year also, on the feast of St. Thomas, was so very immoderately violent a wind,

that no man who was then living ever remembered any greater; and that was everywhere seen both in houses

and also in trees. This year also died Pope Paschalis; and John of Gaeta succeeded to the popedom, whose

other name was Gelasius.

A.D. 1119. All this year continued the King Henry in Normandy; and he was greatly perplexed by the

hostility of the King of France, and also of his own men, who with treachery deserted from him, and oft

readily betrayed him; until the two kings came together in Normandy with their forces. There was the King of

France put to flight, and all his best men taken. And afterwards many of King Henry's men returned to him,

and accorded with him, who were before, with their castellans, against him. And some of the castles he took

by main strength. This year went William, the son of King Henry and Queen Matilda, into Normandy to his

father, and there was given to him, and wedded to wife, the daughter of the Earl of Anjou. On the eve of the

mass of St. Michael was much earthheaving in some places in this land; though most of all in Glocestershire

and in Worcestershire. In this same year died the Pope Gelasius, on this side of the Alps, and was buried at

Clugny. And after him the Archbishop of Vienna was chosen pope, whose name was Calixtus. He afterwards,

on the festival of St. Luke the Evangelist, came into France to Rheims, and there held a council. And the


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part VII 104



Top




Page No 107


Archbishop Turstin of York went thither; and, because that he against right, and against the archiepiscopal

stall in Canterbury, and against the king's will, received his hood at the hands of the pope, the king interdicted

him from all return to England. And thus he lost his archbishopric, and with the pope went towards Rome. In

this year also died the Earl Baldwin of Flanders of the wounds that he received in Normandy. And after him

succeeded to the earldom Charles, the son of his uncle by the father's side, who was son of Cnute, the holy

King of Denmark.

A.D. 1120. This year were reconciled the King of England and the King of France; and after their

reconciliation all the King Henry's own men accorded with him in Normandy, as well as the Earl of Flanders

and the Earl of Ponthieu. From this time forward the King Henry settled his castles and his land in Normandy

after his will; and so before Advent came to this land. And in this expedition were drowned the king's two

sons, William and Richard, and Richard, Earl of Chester, and Ottuel his brother, and very many of the king's

household, stewards, and chamberlains, and butlers. and men of various abodes; and with them a countless

multidude of very incomparable folk besides. Sore was their death to their friends in a twofold respect: one,

that they so suddenly lost this life; the other, that few of their bodies were found anywhere afterwards. This

year came that light to the sepulchre of the Lord in Jerusalem twice; once at Easter, and the other on the

assumption of St. Mary, as credible persons said who came thence. And the Archbishop Turstin of York was

through the pope reconciled with the king, and came to this land, and recovered his bishopric, though it was

very undesirable to the Archbishop of Canterbury.

A.D. 1121. This year was the King Henry at Christmas at Bramton, and afterwards, before Candlemas, at

Windsor was given him to wife Athelis; soon afterwards consecrated queen, who was daughter of the Duke

of Louvain. And the moon was eclipsed in the night of the nones of April, being a fortnight old. And the king

was at Easter at Berkley; and after that at Pentecost he held a full court at Westminster; and afterwards in the

summer went with an army into Wales. And the Welsh came against him; and after the king's will they

accorded with him. This year came the Earl of Anjou from Jerusalem into his land; and soon after sent hither

to fetch his daughter, who had been given to wife to William, the king's son. And in the night of the eve of

"Natalis Domini" was a very violent wind over all this land, and that was in many things evidently seen.

A.D. 1122. In this year was the King Henry at Christmas in Norwich, and at Easter in Northampton. And in

the Lenttide before that, the town of Glocester was on fire: the while that the monks were singing their

mass, and the deacon had begun the gospel, "Praeteriens Jesus", at that very moment came the fire from the

upper part of the steeple, and burned all the minster, and all the treasures that were there within; except a few

books, and three masshackles. That was on the eighth day before the ides of Marcia. And thereafter, the

Tuesday after PalmSunday, was a very violent wind on the eleventh day before the calends of April; after

which came many tokens far and wide in England, and many spectres were both seen and heard. And the

eighth night before the calends of August was a very violent earthquake over all Somersetshire, and in

Glocestershire. Soon after, on the sixth day before the ides of September, which was on the festival of St.

Mary, (145) there was a very violent wind from the fore part of the day to the depth of the night. This same

year died Ralph, the Archbishop of Canterbury; that was on the thirteenth day before the calends of

November. After this there were many shipmen on the sea, and on fresh water, who said, that they saw on the

northeast, level with the earth, a fire huge and broad, which anon waxed in length up to the welkin; and the

welkin undid itself in four parts, and fought against it, as if it would quench it; and the fire waxed

nevertheless up to the heaven. The fire they saw in the daydawn; and it lasted until it was light over all. That

was on the seventh day before the ides of December.

A.D. 1123. In this year was the King Henry, at Christmastide at Dunstable, and there came to him the

ambassadors of the Earl of Anjou. And thence he went to Woodstock; and his bishops and his whole court

with him. Then did it betide on a Wednesday, which was on the fourth day before the ides of January, that the

king rode in his deerfold; (146) the Bishop Roger of Salisbury (147) on one side of him, and the Bishop

Robert Bloet of Lincoln on the other side of him. And they rode there talking together. Then sank down the


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part VII 105



Top




Page No 108


Bishop of Lincoln, and said to the king, "Lord king, I die." And the king alighted down from his horse, and

lifted him betwixt his arms, and let men bear him home to his inn. There he was soon dead; and they carried

him to Lincoln with great worship, and buried him before the altar of St. Mary. And the Bishop of Chester,

whose name was Robert Pecceth, buried him. Soon after this sent the king his writ over all England, and bade

all his bishops and his abbots and his thanes, that they should come to his wittenmoot on Candlemas day at

Glocester to meet him: and they did so. When they were there gathered together, then the king bade them,

that they should choose for themselves an Archbishop of Canterbury, whomsoever they would, and he would

confirm it. Then spoke the bishops among themselves, and said that they never more would have a man of the

monastic order as archbishop over them. And they went all in a body to the king, and earnestly requested that

they might choose from the clerical order whomsoever they would for archbishop. And the king granted it to

them. This was all concerted before, through the Bishop of Salisbury, and through the Bishop of Lincoln ere

he was dead; for that they never loved the rule of monks, but were ever against monks and their rule. And the

prior and the monks of Canterbury, and all the other persons of the monastic order that were there, withstood

it full two days; but it availed nought: for the Bishop of Salisbury was strong, and wielded all England, and

opposed them with all his power and might. Then chose they a clerk, named William of Curboil. He was

canon of a monastery called Chiche. (148) And they brought him before the king; and the king gave him the

archbishopric. And all the bishops received him: but almost all the monks, and the earls, and the thanes that

were there, protested against him. About the same time departed the earl's messengers (149) in hostility from

the king, reckless of his favour. During the same time came a legate from Rome, whose name was Henry. He

was abbot of the monastery of St. John of Angeli; and he came after the Romescot. And he said to the king,

that it was against right that men should set a clerk over monks; and therefore they had chosen an archbishop

before in their chapter after right. But the king would not undo it, for the love of the Bishop of Salisbury.

Then went the archbishop, soon after this, to Canterbury; and was there received, though it was against their

will; and he was there soon blessed to bishop by the Bishop of London, and the Bishop Ernulf of Rochester,

and the Bishop William Girard of Winchester, and the Bishop Bernard of Wales, and the Bishop Roger of

Salisbury. Then, early in Lent, went the archbishop to Rome, after his pall; and with him went the Bishop

Bernard of Wales; and Sefred, Abbot of Glastonbury; and Anselm, Abbot of St. Edmund's bury; and John,

Archdeacon of Canterbury; and Gifard, who was the king's courtchaplain. At the same time went the

Archbishop Thurstan of York to Rome, through the behest of the pope, and came thither three days ere the

Archbishop of Canterbury came, and was there received with much worship. Then came the Archbishop of

Canterbury, and was there full seven nights ere they could come to a conference with the pope. That was,

because the pope was made to understand that he had obtained the archbishopric against the monks of the

minster, and against right. But that overcame Rome, which overcometh all the world; that is, gold and silver.

And the pope softened, and gave him his pall. And the archbishop (of York) swore him subjection, in all

those things, which the pope enjoined him, by the heads of St. Peter and St. Paul; and the pope then sent him

home with his blessing. The while that the archbishop was out of the land, the king gave the bishopric of Bath

to the Queen's chancellor, whose name was Godfrey. He was born in Louvain. That was on the Annunciation

of St. Mary, at Woodstock. Soon after this went the king to Winchester, and was all Eastertide there. And

the while that he was there, gave he the bishopric of Lincoln to a clerk hight Alexander. He was nephew of

the Bishop of Salisbury. This he did all for the love of the bishop. Then went the king thence to Portsmouth,

and lay there all over Pentecost week. Then, as soon as he had a fair wind, he went over into Normandy; and

meanwhile committed all England to the guidance and government of the Bishop Roger of Salisbury. Then

was the king all this year (150) in Normandy. And much hostility arose betwixt him and his thanes; so that

the Earl Waleram of Mellent, and Hamalric, and Hugh of Montfort, and William of Romare, and many

others, went from him, and held their castles against him. And the king strongly opposed them: and this same

year he won of Waleram his castle of PontAudemer, and of Hugh that of Montfort; and ever after, the

longer he stayed, the better he sped. This same year, ere the Bishop of Lincoln came to his bishopric, almost

all the borough of Lincoln was burned, and numberless folks, men and women, were consumed: and so much

harm was there done as no man could describe to another. That was on the fourteenth day before the calends

of June.


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part VII 106



Top




Page No 109


A.D. 1124. All this year was the King Henry in Normandy. That was for the great hostility that he had with

the King Louis of France, and with the Earl of Anjou, and most of all with his own men. Then it happened,

on the day of the Annunciation of St. Mary, that the Earl Waleram of Mellent went from one of his castles

called Belmont to another called Watteville. With him went the steward of the King of France, Amalric, and

Hugh the son of Gervase, and Hugh of Montfort, and many other good knights. Then came against them the

king's knights from all the castles that were thereabout, and fought with them, and put them to flight, and took

the Earl Waleram, and Hugh, the son of Gervase, and Hugh of Montfort, and five and twenty other knights,

and brought them to the king. And the king committed the Earl Waleram, and Hugh, the son of Gervase, to

close custody in the castle at Rouen; but Hugh of Montfort he sent to England, and ordered him to be secured

with strong bonds in the castle at Glocester. And of the others as many as he chose he sent north and south to

his castles in captivity. After this went the king, and won all the castles of the Earl Waleram that were in

Normandy, and all the others that his enemies held against him. All this hostility was on account of the son of

the Earl Robert of Normandy, named William. This same William had taken to wife the younger daughter of

Fulke, Earl of Anjou: and for this reason the King of France and all the earls held with him, and all the rich

men; and said that the king held his brother Robert wrongfully in captivity, and drove his son William

unjustly out of Normandy. This same year were the seasons very unfavourable in England for corn and all

fruits; so that between Christmas and Candlemas men sold the acreseed of wheat, that is two seedlips, for

six shillings; and the barley, that is three seedlips, for six shillings also; and the acreseed of oats, that is four

seedlips, for four shillings. That was because that corn was scarce; and the penny was so adulterated, (151)

that a man who had a pound at a market could not exchange twelve pence thereof for anything. In this same

year died the blessed Bishop Ernulf of Rochester, who before was Abbot of Peterborough. That was on the

ides of March. And after this died the King Alexander of Scotland, on the ninth day before the calends of

May. And David his brother, who was Earl of Northamptonshire, succeeded to the kingdom; and had both

together, the kingdom of Scotland and the earldom in England. And on the nineteenth day before the calends

of January died the Pope of Rome, whose name was Calixtus, and Honorius succeeded to the popedom. This

same year, after St. Andrew's mass, and before Christmas, held Ralph Basset and the king's thanes a

wittenmoot in Leicestershire, at Huncothoe, and there hanged more thieves than ever were known before; that

is, in a little while, four and forty men altogether; and despoiled six men of their eyes and of their testicles.

Many true men said that there were several who suffered very unjustly; but our Lord God Almighty, who

seeth and knoweth every secret, seeth also that the wretched people are oppressed with all unrighteousness.

First they are bereaved of their property, and then they are slain. Full heavy year was this. The man that had

any property, was bereaved of it by violent guilds and violent moots. The man that had not, was starved with

hunger.

A.D. 1125. In this year sent the King Henry, before Christmas, from Normandy to England, and bade that all

the mintmen that were in England should be mutilated in their limbs; that was, that they should lose each of

them the right hand, and their testicles beneath. This was because the man that had a pound could not lay out

a penny at a market. And the Bishop Roger of Salisbury sent over all England, and bade them all that they

should come to Winchester at Christmas. When they came thither, then were they taken one by one, and

deprived each of the right hand and the testicles beneath. All this was done within the twelfthnight. And that

was all in perfect justice, because that they had undone all the land with the great quantity of base coin that

they all bought. In this same year sent the Pope of Rome to this land a cardinal, named John of Crema. He

came first to the king in Normandy, and the king received him with much worship. He betook himself then to

the Archbishop William of Canterbury; and he led him to Canterbury; and he was there received with great

veneration, and in solemn procession. And he sang the high mass on Easter day at the altar of Christ.

Afterwards he went over all England, to all the bishoprics and abbacies that were in this land; and in all he

was received with respect. And all gave him many and rich gifts. And afterwards he held his council in

London full three days, on the Nativity of St. Mary in September, with archbishops, and diocesan bishops,

and abbots, the learned and the lewd; (152) and enjoined there the same laws that Archbishop Anselm had

formerly enjoined, and many more, though it availed little. Thence he went over sea soon after Michaelmas,

and so to Rome; and (with him) the Archbishop William of Canterbury, and the Archbishop Thurstan of


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part VII 107



Top




Page No 110


York, and the Bishop Alexander of Lincoln, and the Bishop J. of Lothian, and the Abbot G. of St. Alban's;

and were there received by the Pope Honorius with great respect; and continued there all the winter. In this

same year was so great a flood on St. Laurence's day, that many towns and men were overwhelmed, and

bridges broken down, and corn and meadows spoiled withal; and hunger and qualm (153) in men and in

cattle; and in all fruits such unseasonableness as was not known for many years before. And this same year

died the Abbot John of Peterborough, on the second day before the ides of October.

A.D. 1126. All this year was the King Henry in Normandy  all till after harvest. Then came he to this land,

betwixt the Nativity of St. Mary and Michaelmas. With him came the queen, and his daughter, whom he had

formerly given to the Emperor Henry of Lorrain to wife. And he brought with him the Earl Waleram, and

Hugh, the son of Gervase. And the earl he sent to Bridgenorth in captivity: and thence he sent him afterwards

to Wallingford; and Hugh to Windsor, whom he ordered to be kept in strong bonds. Then after Michaelmas

came David, the king of the Scots, from Scotland to this land; and the King Henry received him with great

worship; and he continued all that year in this land. In this year the king had his brother Robert taken from

the Bishop Roger of Salisbury, and committed him to his son Robert, Earl of Glocester, and had him led to

Bristol, and there put into the castle. That was all done through his daughter's counsel, and through David, the

king of the Scots, her uncle.

A.D. 1127. This year held the King Henry his court at Christmas in Windsor. There was David the king of the

Scots, and all the head men that were in England, learned and lewd. And there he engaged the archbishops,

and bishops, and abbots, and earls, and all the thanes that were there, to swear England and Normandy after

his day into the hands of his daughter Athelicia, who was formerly the wife of the Emperor of Saxony.

Afterwards he sent her to Normandy; and with her went her brother Robert, Earl of Glocester, and Brian, son

of the Earl Alan Fergan; (154) and he let her wed the son of the Earl of Anjou, whose name was Geoffry

Martel. All the French and English, however, disapproved of this; but the king did it for to have the alliance

of the Earl of Anjou, and for to have help against his nephew William. In the Lenttide of this same year was

the Earl Charles of Flanders slain in a church, as he lay there and prayed to God, before the altar, in the midst

of the mass, by his own men. And the King of France brought William, the son of the Earl of Normandy, and

gave him the earldom; and the people of that land accepted him. This same William had before taken to wife

the daughter of the Earl of Anjou; but they were afterwards divorced on the plea of consanguinity. This was

all through the King Henry of England. Afterwards took he to wife the sister of the king's wife of France; and

for this reason the king gave him the earldom of Flanders. This same year he (155) gave the abbacy of

Peterborough to an abbot named Henry of Poitou, who retained in hand his abbacy of St. John of Angeli; but

all the archbishops and bishops said that it was against right, and that he could not have two abbacies on

hand. But the same Henry gave the king to understand, that he had relinquished his abbacy on account of the

great hostility that was in the land; and that he did through the counsel and leave of the Pope of Rome, and

through that of the Abbot of Clugny, and because he was legate of the Romescot. But, nevertheless, it was

not so; for he would retain both in hand; and did so as long as God's will was. He was in his clerical state

Bishop of Soissons; afterwards monk of Clugny; and then prior in the same monastery. Afterwards he

became prior of Sevigny; and then, because he was a relation of the King of England, and of the Earl of

Poitou, the earl gave him the abbacy of St. John's minster of Angeli. Afterwards, through his great craft, he

obtained the archbishopric of Besancon; and had it in hand three days; after which he justly lost it, because he

had before unjustly obtained it. Afterwards he procured the bishopric of Saintes; which was five miles from

his abbey. That he had fullnigh a week (156) in hand; but the Abbot of Clugny brought him thence, as he

before did from Besancon. Then he bethought him, that, if he could be fastrooted in England, he might have

all his will. Wherefore he besought the king, and said unto him, that he was an old man  a man completely

broken  that he could not brook the great injustice and the great hostility that were in their land: and then,

by his own endearours, and by those of all his friends, he earnestly and expressly entreated for the abbacy of

Peterborough. And the king procured it for him, because he was his relation, and because he was the principal

person to make oath and bear witness when the son of the Earl of Normandy and the daughter of the Earl of

Anjou were divorced on the plea of consanguinity. Thus wretchedly was the abbacy given away, betwixt


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part VII 108



Top




Page No 111


Christmas and Candlemas, at London; and so he went with the King to Winchester, and thence he came to

Peterborough, and there he dwelt (157) right so as a drone doth in a hive. For as the drone fretteth and

draggeth fromward all that the bees drag toward [the hive], so did he.  All that he might take, within and

without, of learned and lewd, so sent he over sea; and no good did there  no good left there. Think no man

unworthily that we say not the truth; for it was fully known over all the land: that, as soon as he came thither,

which was on the Sunday when men sing "Exurge quare o D etc." immediately after, several persons saw

and heard many huntsmen hunting. The hunters were swarthy, and huge, and ugly; and their hounds were all

swarthy, and broadeyed, and ugly. And they rode on swarthy horses, and swarthy bucks. This was seen in

the very deerfold in the town of Peterborough, and in all the woods from that same town to Stamford. And

the monks heard the horn blow that they blew in the night. Credible men, who watched them in the night,

said that they thought there might well be about twenty or thirty hornblowers. This was seen and heard from

the time that he (158) came thither, all the Lenttide onward to Easter. This was his entry; of his exit we can

as yet say nought. God provide.

A.D. 1128. All this year was the King Henry in Normandy, on account of the hostility that was between him

and his nephew, the Earl of Flanders. But the earl was wounded in a fight by a swain; and so wounded he

went to the monastery of St. Bertin; where he soon became a monk, lived five days afterwards, then died, and

was there buried. God honour his soul. That was on the sixth day before the calends of August. This same

year died the Bishop Randulph Passeflambard of Durham; and was there buried on the nones of September.

And this same year went the aforesaid Abbot Henry home to his own minster at Poitou by the king's leave.

He gave the king to understand, that he would withal forgo that minster, and that land, and dwell with him in

England, and in the monastery of Peterborough. But it was not so nevertheless. He did this because he would

be there, through his crafty wiles, were it a twelvemonth or more, and come again afterwards. May God

Almighty extend his mercy over that wretched place. This same year came from Jerusalem Hugh of the

Temple to the king in Normandy; and the king received him with much honour, and gave him rich presents in

gold and in silver. And afterwards he sent him into England; and there he was received by all good men, who

all gave him presents, and in Scotland also: and by him they sent to Jerusalem much wealth withal in gold

and in silver. And he invited folk out to Jerusalem; and there went with him and after him more people than

ever did before, since that the first expedition was in the day of Pope Urban. Though it availed little; for he

said, that a mighty war was begun between the Christians and the heathens; but when they came thither, then

was it nought but leasing. (159) Thus pitifully was all that people swinked. (160)

A.D. 1129. In this year sent the King to England after the Earl Waleram, and after Hugh, the son of Gervase.

And they gave hostages for them. And Hugh went home to his own land in France; but Waleram was left

with the king: and the king gave him all his land except his castle alone. Afterwards came the king to England

within the harvest: and the earl came with him: and they became as good friends as they were foes before.

Soon after, by the king's counsel, and by his leave, sent the Archbishop William of Canterbury over all

England, and bade bishops, and abbots, and archdeacons, and all the priors, monks, and canons, that were in

all the cells in England, and all who had the care and superintendence of christianity, that they should all

come to London at Michaelmas, and there should speak of all God's rights. When they came thither, then

began the moot on Monday, and continued without intermission to the Friday. When it all came forth, then

was it all found to be about archdeacons' wives, and about priests' wives; that they should forgo them by St.

Andrew's mass; and he who would not do that, should forgo his church, and his house, and his home, and

never more have any calling thereto. This bade the Archbishop William of Canterbury, and all the diocesan

bishops that were then in England, but the king gave them all leave to go home. And so they went home; and

all the ordinances amounted to nothing. All held their wives by the king's leave as they did before. This same

year died the Bishop William Giffard of Winchester; and was there buried, on the eighth day before the

calends of February. And the King Henry gave the bishopric after Michaelmas to the Abbot Henry of

Glastonbury, his nephew, and he was consecrated bishop by the Archbishop William of Canterbury on the

fifteenth day before the calends of December. This same year died Pope Honorius. Ere he was well dead,

there were chosen two popes. The one was named Peter, who was monk of Clugny, and was born of the


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part VII 109



Top




Page No 112


richest men of Rome; and with him held those of Rome, and the Duke of Sicily. The other was Gregory: he

was a clerk, and was driven out of Rome by the other pope, and by his kinsmen. With him held the Emperor

of Saxony, and the King of France, and the King Henry of England, and all those on this side of the Alps.

Now was there such division in Christendom as never was before. May Christ consult for his wretched folk.

This same year, on the night of the mass of St. Nicholas, a little before day, there was a great earthquake.

A.D. 1130. This year was the monastery of Canterbury consecrated by the Archbishop William, on the fourth

day before the nones of May. There were the Bishops John of Rochester, Gilbert Universal of London, Henry

of Winchester, Alexander of Lincoln, Roger of Salisbury, Simon of Worcester, Roger of Coventry, Geoffry

of Bath, Evrard of Norwich, Sigefrith of Chichester, Bernard of St. David's, Owen of Evreux in Normandy,

John of Sieyes. On the fourth day after this was the King Henry in Rochester, when the town was almost

consumed by fire; and the Archbishop William consecrated the monastery of St. Andrew, and the aforesaid

bishops with him. And the King Henry went over sea into Normandy in harvest. This same year came the

Abbot Henry of Angeli after Easter to Peterborough, and said that he had relinquished that monastery (161)

withal. After him came the Abbot of Clugny, Peter by name, to England by the king's leave; and was received

by all, whithersoever he came, with much respect. To Peterborough he came; and there the Abbot Henry

promised him that he would procure him the minster of Peterborough, that it might be subject to Clugny. But

it is said in the proverb, "The hedge abideth, that acres divideth." May God Almighty frustrate evil designs.

Soon after this, went the Abbot of Clugny home to his country. This year was Angus slain by the army of the

Scots, and there was a great multitude slain with him. There was God's fight sought upon him, for that he was

all forsworn.

A.D. 1131. This year, after Christmas, on a Monday night, at the first sleep, was the heaven on the northern

hemisphere (162) all as if it were burning fire; so that all who saw it were so dismayed as they never were

before. That was on the third day before the ides of January. This same year was so great a murrain of cattle

as never was before in the memory of man over all England. That was in neat cattle and in swine; so that in a

town where there were ten ploughs going, or twelve, there was not left one: and the man that had two

hundred or three hundred swine, had not one left. Afterwards perished the hen fowls; then shortened the

fleshmeat, and the cheese, and the butter. May God better it when it shall be his will. And the King Henry

came home to England before harvest, after the mass of St. Peter "ad vincula". This same year went the

Abbot Henry, before Easter, from Peterborough over sea to Normandy, and there spoke with the king, and

told him that the Abbot of Clugny had desired him to come to him, and resign to him the abbacy of Angeli,

after which he would go home by his leave. And so he went home to his own minster, and there remained

even to midsummer day. And the next day after the festival of St. John chose the monks an abbot of

themselves, brought him into the church in procession, sang "Te Deum laudamus", rang the bells, set him on

the abbot's throne, did him all homage, as they should do their abbot: and the earl, and all the head men, and

the monks of the minster, drove the other Abbot Henry out of the monastery. And they had need; for in

fiveandtwenty winters had they never hailed one good day. Here failed him all his mighty crafts. Now it

behoved him, that he crope in his skin into every corner, if peradventure there were any unresty wrench,

(163) whereby he might yet once more betray Christ and all Christian people. Then retired he into Clugny,

where he was held so fast, that he could not move east or west. The Abbot of Clugny said that they had lost

St. John's minster through him, and through his great sottishness. Then could he not better recompense them;

but he promised them, and swore oaths on the holy cross, that if he might go to England he should get them

the minster of Peterborough; so that he should set there the prior of Clugny, with a churchwarden, a treasurer,

and a sacristan: and all the things that were within the minster and without, he should procure for them. Thus

he departed into France; and there remained all that year. Christ provide for the wretched monks of

Peterborough, and for that wretched place. Now do they need the help of Christ and of all Christian folk.

A.D. 1132. This year came King Henry to this land. Then came Abbot Henry, and betrayed the monks of

Peterborough to the king, because he would subject that minster to Clugny; so that the king was well nigh

entrapped, and sent after the monks. But through the grace of God, and through the Bishop of Salisbury, and


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part VII 110



Top




Page No 113


the Bishop of Lincoln, and the other rich men that were there, the king knew that he proceeded with

treachery. When he no more could do, then would he that his nephew should be Abbot of Peterborough. But

Christ forbade. Not very long after this was it that the king sent after him, and made him give up the Abbey

of Peterborough, and go out of the land. And the king gave the abbacy to a prior of St. Neot's, called Martin,

who came on St. Peter's massday with great pomp into the minster.

A.D. 1135. In this year went the King Henry over sea at the Lammas; and the next day, as he lay asleep on

ship, the day darkened over all lands, and the sun was all as it were a three night old moon, and the stars

about him at midday. Men were very much astonished and terrified, and said that a great event should come

hereafter. So it did; for that same year was the king dead, the next day after St. Andrew's massday, in

Normandy. Then was there soon tribulation in the land; for every man that might, soon robbed another. Then

his sons and his friends took his body, and brought it to England, and buried it at Reading. A good man he

was; and there was great dread of him. No man durst do wrong with another in his time. Peace he made for

man and beast. Whoso bare his burthen of gold and silver, durst no man say ought to him but good.

Meanwhile was his nephew come to England, Stephen de Blois. He came to London, and the people of

London received him, and sent after the Archbishop William Curboil, and hallowed him to king on midwinter

day. In this king's time was all dissention, and evil, and rapine; for against him rose soon the rich men who

were traitors; and first of all Baldwin de Redvers, who held Exeter against him. But the king beset it; and

afterwards Baldwin accorded. Then took the others, and held their castles against him; and David, King of

Scotland, took to Wessington against him. Nevertheless their messengers passed between them; and they

came together, and were settled, but it availed little.

A.D. 1137. This year went the King Stephen over sea to Normandy, and there was received; for that they

concluded that he should be all such as the uncle was; and because he had got his treasure: but he dealed it

out, and scattered it foolishly. Much had King Henry gathered, gold and silver, but no good did men for his

soul thereof. When the King Stephen came to England, he held his council at Oxford; where he seized the

Bishop Roger of Sarum, and Alexander, Bishop of Lincoln, and the chancellor Roger, his nephew; and threw

all into prison till they gave up their castles. When the traitors understood that he was a mild man, and soft,

and good, and no justice executed, then did they all wonder. They had done him homage, and sworn oaths,

but they no truth maintained. They were all forsworn, and forgetful of their troth; for every rich man built his

castles, which they held against him: and they filled the land full of castles. They cruelly oppressed the

wretched men of the land with castleworks; and when the castles were made, they filled them with devils

and evil men. Then took they those whom they supposed to have any goods, both by night and by day,

labouring men and women, and threw them into prison for their gold and silver, and inflicted on them

unutterable tortures; for never were any martyrs so tortured as they were. Some they hanged up by the feet,

and smoked them with foul smoke; and some by the thumbs, or by the head, and hung coats of mail on their

feet. They tied knotted strings about their heads, and twisted them till the pain went to the brains. They put

them into dungeons, wherein were adders, and snakes, and toads; and so destroyed them. Some they placed in

a crucethouse; that is, in a chest that was short and narrow, and not deep; wherein they put sharp stones, and

so thrust the man therein, that they broke all the limbs. In many of the castles were things loathsome and

grim, called "Sachenteges", of which two or three men had enough to bear one. It was thus made: that is,

fastened to a beam; and they placed a sharp iron [collar] about the man's throat and neck, so that he could in

no direction either sit, or lie, or sleep, but bear all that iron. Many thousands they wore out with hunger. I

neither can, nor may I tell all the wounds and all the pains which they inflicted on wretched men in this land.

This lasted the nineteen winters while Stephen was king; and it grew continually worse and worse. They

constantly laid guilds on the towns, and called it "tenserie"; and when the wretched men had no more to give,

then they plundered and burned all the towns; that well thou mightest go a whole day's journey and never

shouldest thou find a man sitting in a town, nor the land tilled. Then was corn dear, and flesh, and cheese, and

butter; for none was there in the land. Wretched men starved of hunger. Some had recourse to alms, who

were for a while rich men, and some fled out of the land. Never yet was there more wretchedness in the land;

nor ever did heathen men worse than they did: for, after a time, they spared neither church nor churchyard,


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part VII 111



Top




Page No 114


but took all the goods that were therein, and then burned the church and all together. Neither did they spare a

bishop's land, or an abbot's, or a priest's, but plundered both monks and clerks; and every man robbed another

who could. If two men, or three, came riding to a town, all the township fled for them, concluding them to be

robbers. The bishops and learned men cursed them continually, but the effect thereof was nothing to them; for

they were all accursed, and forsworn, and abandoned. To till the ground was to plough the sea: the earth bare

no corn, for the land was all laid waste by such deeds; and they said openly, that Christ slept, and his saints.

Such things, and more than we can say, suffered we nineteen winters for our sins. In all this evil time held

Abbot Martin his abbacy twenty years and a half, and eight days, with much tribulation; and found the monks

and the guests everything that behoved them; and held much charity in the house; and, notwithstanding all

this, wrought on the church, and set thereto lands and rents, and enriched it very much, and bestowed

vestments upon it. And he brought them into the new minster on St. Peter's massday with much pomp;

which was in the year, from the incarnation of our Lord, 1140, and in the twentythird from the destruction

of the place by fire. And he went to Rome, and there was well received by the Pope Eugenius; from whom he

obtained their privileges:  one for all the lands of the abbey, and another for the lands that adjoin to the

churchyard; and, if he might have lived longer, so he meant to do concerning the treasury. And he got in the

lands that rich men retained by main strength. Of William Malduit, who held the castle of Rockingham, he

won Cotingham and Easton; and of Hugh de Walteville, he won Hirtlingbury and Stanwick, and sixty

shillings from Oldwinkle each year. And he made many monks, and planted a vineyard, and constructed

many works, and made the town better than it was before. He was a good monk, and a good man; and for this

reason God and good men loved him. Now we will relate in part what happened in King Stephen's time. In

his reign the Jews of Norwich bought a Christian child before Easter, and tortured him after the same manner

as our Lord was tortured; and on Long Friday (164) hanged him on a rood, in mockery of our Lord, and

afterwards buried him. They supposed that it would be concealed, but our Lord showed that he was a holy

martyr. And the monks took him, and buried him with high honour in the minster. And through our Lord he

worketh wonderful and manifold miracles, and is called St. William.

A.D. 1138. In this year came David, King of Scotland, with an immense army to this land. He was ambitious

to win this land; but against him came William, Earl of Albemarle, to whom the king had committed York,

and other borderers, with few men, and fought against them, and routed the king at the Standard, and slew

very many of his gang.

A.D. 1140. In this year wished the King Stephen to take Robert, Earl of Gloucester, the son of King Henry;

but he could not, for he was aware of it. After this, in the Lent, the sun and the day darkened about the

noontide of the day, when men were eating; and they lighted candles to eat by. That was the thirteenth day

before the kalends of April. Men were very much struck with wonder. Thereafter died William, Archbishop

of Canterbury; and the king made Theobald archbishop, who was Abbot of Bec. After this waxed a very great

war betwixt the king and Randolph, Earl of Chester; not because he did not give him all that he could ask

him, as he did to all others; but ever the more he gave them, the worse they were to him. The Earl held

Lincoln against the king, and took away from him all that he ought to have. And the king went thither, and

beset him and his brother William de Romare in the castle. And the earl stole out, and went after Robert, Earl

of Glocester, and brought him thither with a large army. And they fought strenuously on Candlemas day

against their lord, and took him; for his men forsook him and fled. And they led him to Bristol, and there put

him into prison in close quarters. Then was all England stirred more than ere was, and all evil was in the land.

Afterwards came the daughter of King Henry, who had been Empress of Germany, and now was Countess of

Anjou. She came to London; but the people of London attempted to take her, and she fled, losing many of her

followers. After this the Bishop of Winchester, Henry, the brother of King Stephen, spake with Earl Robert,

and with the empress, and swore them oaths, "that he never more would hold with the king, his brother," and

cursed all the men that held with him, and told them, that he would give them up Winchester; and he caused

them to come thither. When they were therein, then came the king's queen with all her strength, and beset

them, so that there was great hunger therein. When they could no longer hold out, then stole they out, and

fled; but those without were aware, and followed them, and took Robert, Earl of Glocester, and led him to


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part VII 112



Top




Page No 115


Rochester, and put him there into prison; but the empress fled into a monastery. Then went the wise men

between the king's friends and the earl's friends; and settled so that they should let the king out of prison for

the earl, and the earl for the king; and so they did. After this settled the king and Earl Randolph at Stamford,

and swore oaths, and plighted their troth, that neither should betray the other. But it availed nothing. For the

king afterwards took him at Northampton, through wicked counsel, and put him into prison; and soon after he

let him out again, through worse counsel, on the condition that he swore by the crucifix, and found hostages,

that he would give up all his castles. Some he gave up, and some gave he not up; and did then worse than he

otherwise would. Then was England very much divided. Some held with the king, and some with the

empress; for when the king was in prison, the earls and the rich men supposed that he never more would

come out: and they settled with the empress, and brought her into Oxford, and gave her the borough. When

the king was out, he heard of this, and took his force, and beset her in the tower. (165) And they let her down

in the night from the tower by ropes. And she stole out, and fled, and went on foot to Wallingford.

Afterwards she went over sea; and those of Normandy turned all from the king to the Earl of Anjou; some

willingly, and some against their will; for he beset them till they gave up their castles, and they had no help of

the king. Then went Eustace, the king's son, to France, and took to wife the sister of the King of France. He

thought to obtain Normandy thereby; but he sped little, and by good right; for he was an evil man. Wherever

he was, he did more evil than good; he robbed the lands, and levied heavy guilds upon them. He brought his

wife to England, and put her into the castle at... (166) Good woman she was; but she had little bliss with him;

and Christ would not that he should long reign. He therefore soon died, and his mother also. And the Earl of

Anjou died; and his son Henry took to the earldom. And the Queen of France parted from the king; and she

came to the young Earl Henry; and he took her to wife, and all Poitou with her. Then went he with a large

force into England, and won some castles; and the king went against him with a much larger force.

Nevertheless, fought they not; but the archbishop and the wise men went between them, and made this

settlement: That the king should be lord and king while he lived, and after his day Henry should be king: that

Henry should take him for a father; and he him for a son: that peace and union should be betwixt them, and in

all England. This and the other provisions that they made, swore the king and the earl to observe; and all the

bishops, and the earls, and the rich men. Then was the earl received at Winchester, and at London, with great

worship; and all did him homage, and swore to keep the peace. And there was soon so good a peace as never

was there before. Then was the king stronger than he ever was before. And the earl went over sea; and all

people loved him; for he did good justice, and made peace.

A.D. 1154. In this year died the King Stephen; and he was buried where his wife and his son were buried, at

Faversham; which monastery they founded. When the king died, then was the earl beyond sea; but no man

durst do other than good for the great fear of him. When he came to England, then was he received with great

worship, and blessed to king in London on the Sunday before midwinter day. And there held he a full court.

The same day that Martin, Abbot of Peterborough, should have gone thither, then sickened he, and died on

the fourth day before the nones of January; and the monks, within the day, chose another of themselves,

whose name was William de Walteville, (167) a good clerk, and good man, and well beloved of the king, and

of all good men. And all the monks buried the abbot with high honours. And soon the newly chosen abbot,

and the monks with him, went to Oxford to the king. And the king gave him the abbacy; and he proceeded

soon afterwards to Peterborough; where he remained with the abbot, ere he came home. And the king was

received with great worship at Peterborough, in full procession. And so he was also at Ramsey, and at

Thorney, and at.... and at Spalding, and at....

ENDNOTES:

(1)  This introductory part of the "Chronicle" to An. I. first

     printed by Gibson from the Laud MS. only, has been corrected

     by a collation of two additional MSS. in the British Museum,

     "Cotton Tiberius B" lv. and "Domitianus A" viii.  Some

     defects are also here supplied.  The materials of this part

     are to be found in Pliny, Solinus, Orosius, Gildas, and


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part VII 113



Top




Page No 116


Bede.  The admeasurement of the island, however inaccurate,

     is from the best authorities of those times, and followed by

     much later historians.

(2)  Gibson, following the Laud MS. has made six nations of five,

     by introducing the British and Welsh as two distinct tribes.

(3)  "De tractu Armoricano."  Bede, "Ecclesiastical History" i.

     I.  The word Armenia occurring a few lines above in Bede, it

     was perhaps inadvertently written by the Saxon compiler of

     the "Chronicle" instead of Armorica.

(4)  In case of a disputed succession, "Ubi res veniret in

     dabium," etc.  Bede, "Ecclesiastical History" i. I.

(5)  Reada, Aelfr.; Reuda, Bede, Hunt. etc.  Perhaps it was

     originally Reutha or Reotha.

(6)  This is an error, arising from the inaccurately written MSS.

     of Orosius and Bede; where "in Hybernia" and "in Hiberniam"

     occur for "in hiberna".  The error is retained in Wheloc's

     Bede.

(7)  Labienus = Laberius.  Venerable Bede also, and Orosius, whom

     he follows verbatim, have "Labienus".  It is probably a

     mistake of some very ancient scribe, who improperly supplied

     the abbreviation "Labius" (for "Laberius") by "Labienus".

(8)  Of these early transactions in Britain King Alfred supplies

     us with a brief but circumstantial account in his Saxon

     paraphrase of "Orosius".

(9)  "8 die Aprilis", Flor. M. West.

(10) Gibbon regrets this chronology, i.e. from the creation of

     the world, which he thinks preferable to the vulgar mode

     from the Christian aera.  But how vague and uncertain the

     scale which depends on a point so remote and undetermined as

     the precise time when the world was created.  If we examine

     the chronometers of different writers we shall find a

     difference, between the maximum and the minimum, of 3368

     years.  The Saxon chronology seems to be founded on that of

     Eusebius, which approaches the medium between the two

     extremes.

(11) An. 42, Flor.  This act is attributed by Orosius, and Bede

     who follows him, to the threatening conduct of Caligula,

     with a remark, that it was he (Pilate) who condemned our

     Lord to death.

(12) An. 48, Flor.  See the account of this famine in King

     Alfred's "Orosius".

(13) Those writers who mention this discovery of the holy cross,

     by Helena the mother of Constantine, disagree so much in

     their chronology, that it is a vain attempt to reconcile

     them to truth or to each other.  This and the other notices

     of ecclesiastical matters, whether Latin or Saxon, from the

     year 190 to the year 380 of the Laud MS. and 381 of the

     printed Chronicle, may be safely considered as

     interpolations, probably posterior to the Norman Conquest.

(14) This is not to be understood strictly; gold being used as a

     general term for money or coin of every description; great

     quantities of which, it is well known, have been found at

     different times, and in many different places, in this

     island: not only of gold, but of silver, brass, copper, etc.

(15) An interpolated legend, from the "Gesta Pontificum",

     repeated by Bede, Florence, Matth. West., Fordun, and

     others.  The head was said to be carried to Edessa.

(16) Merely of those called from him "Benedictines".  But the

     compiler of the Cotton MS., who was probably a monk of that

     order, seems not to acknowledge any other.  Matthew of

     Westminster places his death in 536.

(17) For an interesting and minute account of the arrival of


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part VII 114



Top




Page No 117


Augustine and his companions in the Isle of Thanet, their

     entrance into Canterbury, and their general reception in

     England, vid. Bede, "Hist. Eccles." i. 25, and the following

     chapters, with the Saxon translation by King Alfred.  The

     succeeding historians have in general repeated the very

     words of Bede.

(18) It was originally, perhaps, in the MSS. ICC. the

     abbreviation for 1,200; which is the number of the slain in

     Bede.  The total number of the monks of Bangor is said to

     have been 2,100; most of whom appear to have been employed

     in prayer on this occasion, and only fifty escape by flight.

     Vide Bede, "Hist. Eccles." ii. 2, and the tribe of Latin

     historians who copy him.

(19) Literally, "swinged, or scourged him."  Both Bede and Alfred

     begin by recording the matter as a vision, or a dream;

     whence the transition is easy to a matter of fact, as here

     stated by the Norman interpolators of the "Saxon Annals".

(20) This epithet appears to have been inserted in some copies of

     the "Saxon Chronicle" so early as the tenth century; to

     distinguish the "old" church or minster at Winchester from

     the "new", consecrated A.D. 903.

(21) Beverleyminster, in Yorkshire.

(22) He was a native of Tarsus in Cilicia, the birthplace of St.

     Paul.

(23) This brief notice of Dryhtelm, for so I find the name

     written in "Cotton Tiberius B iv." is totally unintelligible

     without a reference to Bede's "Ecclesiastical History", v.

     12; where a curious account of him may be found, which is

     copied by Matthew of Westminster, anno. 699.

(25) Wothnesbeorhge, Ethelw.; Wonsdike, Malmsb.; Wonebirih, H.

     Hunt; Wodnesbeorh, Flor.; Wodnesbirch, M. West.  There is no

     reason, therefore, to transfer the scene of action to

     Woodbridge, as some have supposed from an erroneous reading.

(26) The establishment of the "English school" at Rome is

     attributed to Ina; a full account of which, and of the

     origin of "Romescot" or "Peterpence" for the support of it,

     may be seen in Matthew of Westminster.

(27) Beorgforda, Ethelw.; Beorhtforda, Flor.;  Hereford and

     Bereford, H. Hunt; Beorford, M. West.  This battle of

     Burford has been considerably amplified by Henry of

     Huntingdon, and after him by Matthew of Westminster.  The

     former, among other absurdities, talks of "Amazonian"

     battleaxes.  They both mention the banner of the "golden

     dragon" etc.

(28) The minuteness of this narrative, combined with the

     simplicity of it, proves that it was written at no great

     distance of time from the event.  It is the first that 

     occurs of any length in the older MSS. of the "Saxon

     Chronicle".

(29) Penga in the original, i.e. "of pence", or "in pence";

     because the silver penny, derived from the Roman "denarius",

     was the standard coin in this country for more than a

     thousand years.  It was also used as a weight, being the

     twentieth part of an ounce.

(30) Since called "sheriff"; i.e. the reve, or steward, of the

     shire.  "Exactor regis".  Ethelw.

(31) This is the Grecian method of computation; between the hours

     of three and six in the morning.  It must be recollected,

     that before the distribution of time into hours, minutes,

     and seconds, the day and night were divided into eight equal

     portions, containing three hours each; and this method was

     continued long afterwards by historians.


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part VII 115



Top




Page No 118


(32) This wanton act of barbarity seems to have existed only in

     the depraved imagination of the Norman interpolator of the

     "Saxon Annals", who eagerly and impatiently dispatches the

     story thus, in order to introduce the subsequent account of

     the synod at Bapchild, so important in his eyes.  Hoveden

     and Wallingford and others have repeated the idle tale; but

     I have not hitherto found it in any historian of authority.

(33) St. Kenelm is said to have succeeded Cenwulf:

          "In the foure and twentithe yere of his kyngdom

          Kenulf wente out of this worlde, and to the joye of 

               hevene com;

          It was after that oure Lord in his moder alygte

          Eigte hondred yet and neygentene, by a countes rigte, 

          Seint Kenelm his yonge sone in his sevende yere

          Kyng was ymad after him, theg he yong were."

                "Vita S. Kenelmi, MS. Coll. Trin Oxon."

               No. 57.Arch.

(34) i.e. the Danes; or, as they are sometimes called, Northmen,

     which is a general term including all those numerous tribes

     that issued at different times from the north of Europe,

     whether Danes, Norwegians, Sweons, Jutes, or Goths, etc.;

     who were all in a state of paganism at this time.

(35) Aetheredus,  Asser, Ethelwerd, etc.  We have therefore

     adopted this orthography.

(36) It is now generally written, as pronounced, "Swanage".

(37) For a more circumstantial account of the Danish or Norman

     operations against Paris at this time, the reader may

     consult Felibien, "Histoire de la Ville de Paris", liv. iii.

     and the authorities cited by him in the margin.  This is

     that celebrated siege of Paris minutely described by Abbo,

     Abbot of Fleury, in two books of Latin hexameters; which,

     however barbarous, contain some curious and authentic matter

     relating to the history of that period.

(38) This bridge was built, or rebuilt on a larger plan than

     before, by Charles the Bald, in the year 861, "to prevent

     the Danes or Normans (says Felibien) from making themselves

     masters of Paris so easily as they had already done so many

     times," etc.  "pour empescher que les Normans ne se

     rendissent maistres de Paris aussi facilement qu'ils

     l'avoient deja fait tant de lois," etc.  Vol. i. p. 91,

     folio.  It is supposed to be the famous bridge afterwards

     called "grand pont" or "pont au change",  the most ancient

     bridge at Paris, and the only one which existed at this

     time.

(39) Or, in Holmsdale, Surry: hence the proverb 

               "This is Holmsdale,

          Never conquer'd, never shall."

(40) The pirates of Armorica, now Bretagne; so called, because

     they abode day and night in their ships; from lid, a ship,

     and wiccian, to watch or abide day and night.

(41) So I understand the word.  Gibson, from Wheloc, says  "in

     aetatis vigore;" a fact contradicted by the statement of

     almost every historian.  Names of places seldom occur in old

     MSS. with capital initials.

(42) i.e. the feast of the Holy Innocents; a festival of great

     antiquity.

(43) i.e. the secular clergy, who observed no rule; opposed to

     the regulars, or monks.

(44) This poetical effusion on the coronation, or rather

     consecration, of King Edgar, as well as the following on his

     death, appears to be imitated in Latin verse by Ethelwerd at

     the end of his curious chronicle.  This seems at least to


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part VII 116



Top




Page No 119


prove that they were both written very near the time, as

     also the eulogy on his reign, inserted 959.

(45) The following passage from Cotton Tiberius B iv., relating

     to the accession of Edward the Martyr, should be added here

        In his days,

          On account of his youth,

          The opponents of God

          Broke through God's laws;

          Alfhere alderman,

          And others many;

          And marr'd monastic rules;

          Minsters they razed,

          And monks drove away,

          And put God's laws to flight 

          Laws that King Edgar

          Commanded the holy

          Saint Ethelwold bishop

          Firmly to settle 

          Widows they stript

          Oft and at random.

          Many breaches of right

          And many bad laws

          Have arisen since;

          And aftertimes

          Prove only worse.

          Then too was Oslac

          The mighty earl

          Hunted from England's shores.

(46) Florence of Worcester mentions three synods this year;

     Kyrtlinege, Calne, and Ambresbyrig.

(47) Vid. "Hist. Eliens." ii. 6.  He was a great benefactor to

     the church of Ely.

(48) This was probably the veteran historian of that name, who

     was killed in the severe encounter with the Danes at Alton

     (Aethelingadene) in the year 1001.

(49) i.e. at Canterbury.  He was chosen or nominated before, by

     King Ethelred and his council, at Amesbury: vid. an. 994.

     This notice of his consecration, which is confirmed by

     Florence of Worcester, is now first admitted into the text

     on the authority of three MSS.

(50) Not the present district socalled, but all that north of

     the Sea of Severn, as opposed to WestWales, another name

     for Cornwall.

(51) See a more full and circumstantial account of these events,

     with some variation of names, in Florence of Worcester.

(52) The successor of Elfeah, or Alphege, in the see of

     Winchester, on the translation of the latter to the

     archiepiscopal see of Canterbury.

(53) This passage, though very important, is rather confused,

     from the Variations in the MSS.; so that it is difficult to

     ascertain the exact proportion of ships and armour which

     each person was to furnish. "Vid. Flor." an. 1008.

(54) These expressions in the present tense afford a strong proof

     that the original records of these transactions are nearly

     coeval with the transactions themselves.  Later MSS. use the

     past tense.

(55) i.e. the Chiltern Hills; from which the southeastern part

     of Oxfordshire is called the Chiltern district.

(56) "Leofruna abbatissa".  Flor.  The insertion of this

     quotation from Florence of Worcester is important, as it

     confirms the reading adopted in the text.  The abbreviation

     "abbt", instead of "abb", seems to mark the abbess.  She was


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part VII 117



Top




Page No 120


the last abbess of St. Mildred's in the Isle of Thanet; not

     Canterbury, as Harpsfield and Lambard say.

(57) This was a title bestowed on the queen.

(58) The "seven" towns mentioned above are reduced here to

     "five"; probably because two had already submitted to the

     king on the death of the two thanes, Sigferth and Morcar.

     These five were, as originally, Leicester, Lincoln,

     Stamford, Nottingham, and Derby.  Vid. an. 942, 1013.

(59) There is a marked difference respecting the name of this

     alderman in MSS.  Some have Ethelsy, as above; others,

     Elfwine, and Ethelwine.  The two last may be reconciled, as

     the name in either case would now be Elwin; but Ethelsy, and

     Elsy are widely different.  Florence of Worcester not only

     supports the authority of Ethelwine, but explains it "Dei

     amici."

(60) Matthew of Westminster says the king took up the body with

     his own hands.

(61) Leofric removed the see to Exeter.

(62) So Florence of Worcester, whose authority we here follow for

     the sake of perspicuity, though some of these events are

     placed in the MSS. to very different years; as the story of

     Beorn.

(63) i.e. The ships of Sweyne, who had retired thither, as before

     described.

(64) "Vid. Flor." A.D. 1049, and verbatim from him in the same

     year, Sim. Dunelm. "inter X. Script. p. 184, I, 10.  See

     also Ordericus Vitalis, A.D. 1050.  This dedication of the

     church of St. Remi, a structure well worth the attention of

     the architectural antiquary, is still commemorated by an

     annual loire, or fair, on the first of October, at which the

     editor was present in the year 1815, and purchased at a

     stall a valuable and scarce history of Rheims, from which he

     extracts the following account of the synod mentioned above:

      "Il fut assemble a l'occasion de la dedicace de la

     nouvelle eglise qu' Herimar, abbe de ce monastere, avoit

     fait batir, seconde par les liberalites des citoyens, etc."

     ("Hist. de Reims", p. 226.)  But, according to our

     Chronicle, the pope took occasion from this synod to make

     some general regulations which concerned all Christendom.

(65) Hereman and Aldred, who went on a mission to the pope from

     King Edward, as stated in the preceding year.

(66) Nine ships were put out of commission the year before; but

     five being left on the paylist for a twelvemonth, they were

     also now laid up.

(67) The ancient name of Westminster; which came into disuse

     because there was another Thorney in Cambridgeshire.

(68) i.e. at Gloucester, according to the printed Chronicle;

     which omits all that took place in the meantime at London

     and Southwark.

(69) Now Westminster.

(70) i.e. Earl Godwin and his crew.

(71) i.e. from the Isle of Portland; where Godwin had landed

     after the plunder of the Isle of Wight.

(72) i.e. Dungeness; where they collected all the ships stationed

     in the great bay formed by the ports of Romney, Hithe, and

     Folkstone.

(73) i.e. Godwin and his son Harold.

(74) i.e. the tide of the river.

(75) Godwin's earldom consisted of Wessex, Sussex, and Kent:

     Sweyn's of Oxford, Gloucester, Hereford, Somerset, and

     Berkshire: and Harold's of Essex, EastAnglia, Huntingdon,

     and Cambridgeshire.


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part VII 118



Top




Page No 121


(76) The church, dedicated to St. Olave, was given by Alan Earl

     of Richmond, about thirtythree years afterwards, to the

     first abbot of St. Mary's in York, to assist him in the

     construction of the new abbey.  It appears from a MS. quoted

     by Leland, that Boothambar was formerly called "Galman

     hithe", not Galmanlith, as printed by Tanner and others.

(77) Called St. Ethelbert's minster; because the relics of the

     holy King Ethelbert were there deposited and preserved.

(78) The place where this army was assembled, though said to be

     very nigh to Hereford, was only so with reference to the

     great distance from which some part of the forces came; as

     they were gathered from all England.  They met, I

     conjecture, on the memorable spot called "Harold's Cross",

     near Cheltenham, and thence proceeded, as here stated, to

     Gloucester.

(79) This was no uncommon thing among the Saxon clergy, bishops

     and all.  The tone of elevated diction in which the writer

     describes the military enterprise of Leofgar and his

     companions, testifies his admiration.

(80) See more concerning him in Florence of Worcester.  His lady,

     Godiva, is better known at Coventry.  See her story at large

     in Bromton and Matthew of Westminster.

(81) He died at his villa at Bromleage (Bromley in

     Staffordshire).  Flor.

(82) He built a new church from the foundation, on a larger plan.

     The monastery existed from the earliest times.

(83) Florence of Worcester says, that he went through Hungary to

     Jerusalem.

(84) This must not be confounded with a spiresteeple.  The

     expression was used to denote a tower, long before spires

     were invented.

(85) Lye interprets it erroneously the "festival" of St. Martin.

      "ad S. Martini festum:" whereas the expression relates to

     the place, not to the time of his death, which is mentioned

     immediately afterwards.

(86) This threnodia on the death of Edward the Confessor will be

     found to correspond, both in metre and expression, with the

     poetical paraphrase of Genesis ascribed to Caedmon.

(87) These facts, though stated in one MS. only, prove the early

     cooperation of Tosty with the King of Norway.  It is

     remarkable that this statement is confirmed by Snorre, who

     says that Tosty was with Harald, the King of Norway, in all

     these expeditions.  Vid "Antiq. CeltoScand." p. 204.

(88) i.e. Harold, King of England; "our" king, as we find him

     Afterwards called in B iv., to distinguish him from Harald,

     King of Norway.

(89) Not only the twelve smacks with which he went into Scotland

     during the summer, as before stated, but an accession of

     force from all quarters.

(90) On the north bank of the Ouse, according to Florence of

     Worcester; the enemy having landed at Richale (now

     "Riccal").  Simeon of Durham names the spot "Apud Fulford,"

     i.e. Fulfordwater, south of the city of York.

(91) It is scarcely necessary to observe that the term "English"

     begins about this time to be substituted for "Angles"; and

     that the Normans are not merely the Norwegians, but the

     Danes and other adventurers from the north, joined with the

     forces of France and Flanders; who, we shall presently see,

     overwhelmed by their numbers the expiring, liberties of

     England.  The Franks begin also to assume the name of

     Frencyscan or "Frenchmen".

(92) i.e. in the expedition against the usurper William.


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part VII 119



Top




Page No 122


(93) i.e.  threw off their allegiance to the Norman usurper,

     and became voluntary outlaws.  The habits of these outlaws,

     or, at least, of their imitators and descendants in the next

     century, are well described in the romance of "Ivanhoe".

(94) The author of the GalloNorman poem printed by Sparke

     elevates his diction to a higher tone, when describing the

     feasts of this same Hereward, whom he calls "le uthlage

     hardi."

(95) Or much "coin"; many "scaettae"; such being the denomination

     of the silver money of the Saxons.

(96) Florence of Worcester and those who follow him say that

     William proceeded as far as Abernethy; where Malcolm met

     him, and surrendered to him.

(97) Whence he sailed to Bretagne, according to Flor. S. Dunelm,

     etc.; but according to Henry of Huntingdon he fled directly

     to Denmark, returning afterwards with Cnute and Hacco, who

     invaded England With a fleet of 200 sail.

(98) i.e. Earl Waltheof.

(99) This notice of St. Petronilla, whose name and existence seem

     scarcely to have been known to the Latin historians, we owe

     exclusively to the valuable MS. "Cotton Tiberius" B lv.  Yet

     if ever female saint deserved to be commemorated as a

     conspicuous example of early piety and christian zeal, it

     must be Petronilla.

(100) The brevity of our Chronicle here, and in the two following

     years, in consequence of the termination of "Cotton

     Tiberius" B iv., is remarkable.  From the year 1083 it

     assumes a character more decidedly AngloNorman.

(101) i.e. In the service; by teaching them a newfangled chant,

     brought from Feschamp in Normandy, instead of that to which

     they had been accustomed, and which is called the Gregorian

     chant.

(102) Literally, "afeared of them"  i.e. terrified by them.

(103) Probably along the open galleries in the upper story of the

     choir.

(104) "Slaegan", in its first sense, signifies "to strike 

     violently"; whence the term "sledgehammer".  This

     consideration will remove the supposed pleonasm in the Saxon

     phrase, which is here literally translated.

(105) "Gild," Sax.; which in this instance was a landtax of one

     shilling to a yardland.

(106)  and of Clave Kyrre, King of Norway.  Vid. "Antiq.

     CeltoScand".

(107) Because there was a mutiny in the Danish fleet; which was

     carried to such a height, that the king, after his return to

     Denmark, was slain by his own subjects.  Vid. "Antiq. Celto

     Scand", also our "Chronicle" A.D. 1087.

(108) i.e. a fourth part of an acre.

(109) At Winchester; where the king held his court at Easter in

     the following year; and the survey was accordingly deposited

     there; whence it was called "Rotulus Wintoniae", and "Liber

     Wintoniae".

(110) An evident allusion to the compilation of Doomsday book,

     already described in A.D. 1085.

(111) Uppeland, Sax.  i.e. villagechurch.

(112) i.e. jurisdiction.  We have adopted the modern title of the

     district; but the Saxon term occurs in many of the ancient

     evidences of Berkeley Castle.

(113) i.e. of the conspirators.

(114) Literally "became his man"  "Ic becom eowr man" was the

     formula of doing homage.

(115) Literally a "gossip"; but such are the changes which words


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part VII 120



Top




Page No 123


undergo in their meaning as well as in their form, that a

     title of honour formerly implying a spiritual relationship

     in God, is now applied only to those whose conversation

     resembles the contemptible tittletattle of a Christening.

(116) From this expression it is evident, that though preference

     was naturally and properly given to hereditary claims, the

     monarchy of Scotland, as well as of England, was in

     principle "elective".  The doctrine of hereditary, of

     divine, of indefeasible "right", is of modern growth.

(117) See the following year towards the end, where Duncan is

     said to be slain.

(118) Peitevin, which is the connecting link between

     "Pictaviensem" and "Poitou".

(119) Now called Southampton, to distinguish it from Northampton,

     but the common people in both neighbourhoods generally say

     "Hamton" to this day (1823).

(120) The title is now Earl of Shrewsbury.

(121) The fourth of April.  Vid. "Ord. Vit."

(122) Commonly called "Peterpence".

(123) Literally "headmen, or chiefs".  The term is still

     retained with a slight variation in the north of Europe, as

     the "hetman" Platoff of celebrated memory.

(124) This name is now written, improperly, Cadogan; though the

     ancient pronunciation continues. "Cadung", "Ann. Wav."

     erroneously, perhaps, for "Cadugn".

(125) It was evidently, therefore, not on Michaelmas day, but

     during the continuance of the mass or festival which was

     celebrated till the octave following.

(126) In the original "he"; so that the Saxons agreed with the

     Greeks and Romans with respect to the gender of a comet.

(127) Literally "took leave": hence the modern phrase to signify

     the departure of one person from another, which in feudal

     times could not be done without leave or permission formally

     obtained.

(128) That is, within the twelve days after Christmas, or the

     interval between Christmas day, properly called the

     Nativity, and the Epiphany, the whole of which was called

     Christmastide or Yuletide, and was dedicated to feasting

     and mirth.

(129) The King of Norway and his men.  "Vid. Flor."

(130) His monument is still to be seen there, a plain gravestone

     of black marble, of the common shape called "dos d'ane";

     such as are now frequently seen, though of inferior

     materials, in the churchyards of villages; and are only one

     remove from the grassy sod.

(131) i.e. before he left Winchester for London; literally

     "thereright"  an expression still used in many parts of

     England.  Neither does the word "directly", which in its

     turn has almost become too vulgar to be used, nor its

     substitute, "immediately", which has nearly superseded it,

     appear to answer the purpose so well as the Saxon, which is

     equally expressive with the French "sur le champ".

(132) This expression shows the adherence of the writer to the

     Saxon line of kings, and his consequent satisfaction in

     recording this alliance of Henry with the daughter of

     Margaret of Scotland.

(133) "Auvergne" at that time was an independent province, and

     formed no part of France.  About the middle of the

     fourteenth century we find Jane, Countess of Auvergne and

     Boulogne, and Queen of France, assisting in the dedication

     of the church of the Carmelites at Paris, together with

     Queen Jeanne d'Evreux, third wife and widow of Charles IV.,


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part VII 121



Top




Page No 124


Blanche of Navarre, widow of Philip VI., and Jeanne de

     France, Queen of Navarre.  Felib. "Histoire de Paris",

     vol. I, p. 356.

(134) A title taken from a town in Normandy, now generally

     written Moretaine, or Moretagne; de Moreteon, de Moritonio,

     Flor.

(135) "cena Domini"  commonly called Maundy Thursday.

(136) Now Tinchebrai.

(137) Matilda, Mathilde, or Maud.

(138) Henry V. of Germany, the son of Henry IV.

(139) Or, "in the early part of the night," etc.

(140) That is, the territory was not a "fee simple", but subject

     to "taillage" or taxation; and that particular species is

     probably here intended which is called in old French "en

     queuage", an expression not very different from that in the

     text above.

(141) i.e. to the earldom of Flanders.

(142) "Mense Julio".  Flor.

(143) We have still the form of saying "Nolo episcopari", when a

     see is offered to a bishop.

(144) i.e. East Bourne in Sussex; where the king was waiting for

     a fair wind to carry him over sea.

(145) The Nativity of the Virgin Mary.

(146) i.e. an inclosure or park for deer.  This is now called

     Blenheim Park, and is one of the few old parks which still

     remain in this country.

(147) This may appear rather an anticipation of the modern see of

     Salisbury, which was not then in existence; the borough of

     Old Saturn, or "Saresberie", being then the episcopal seat.

(148) St. Osythe, in Essex; a priory rebuilt A. 1118, for canons

of the Augustine order, of which there are considerable remains.

(149) i.e. Of the Earl of Anjou.

(150) The writer means, "the remainder of this year"; for the

     feast of Pentecost was already past, before the king left

     England.

(151) The pennies, or pence, it must be remembered, were of

     silver at this time.

(152) i.e. Clergy and laity.

(153) This word is still in use, but in a sense somewhat

     different; as qualms of conscience, etc.

(154) See an account of him in "Ord. Vit." 544.  Conan, another

     son of this Alan, Earl of Brittany, married a daughter of

     Henry I.

(155) i.e. Henry, King of England.

(156) "A se'nnight", the space of seven nights; as we still say,

     "a fortnight", i.e. the space of fourteen nights.  The

     French express the space of one week by "huit jours", the

     origin of the "octave" in English law; of two by "quinte

     jours".  So "septimana" signifies "seven mornings"; whence

     the French word "semaine".

(157) Literally, "woned".  Vid Chaucer, "Canterbury Tales", v.

     7745.  In Scotland, a lazy indolent manner of doing anything

     is called "droning".

(158) The Abbot Henry of Angeli.

(159) "Thou shalt destroy them that speak `leasing,'" etc.

     "Psalms".

(160) i.e. Vexed, harassed, fatigued, etc.  Milton has used the

     word in the last sense.

(161) The monastery of Angeli.

(162) Aurora Borealis, or the northern lights.

(163) "Any restless manoeuvre or stratagem."  Both words occur in

     Chaucer.  See "Troilus and Criseyde", v. 1355, and


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part VII 122



Top




Page No 125


"Canterbury Tales", v. 16549.  The idea seems to be taken

     from the habits of destructive and undermining vermin.

(164) Now called "GoodFriday".

(165) The tower of the castle at Oxford, built by D'Oyley, which

     still remains.

(166) The MS. is here deficient.

(167) Or Vaudeville.


The AngloSaxon Chronicle

Part VII 123



Top





Bookmarks



1. Table of Contents, page = 3

2. The Anglo-Saxon Chronicle, page = 4

   3. Anonymous, page = 4

   4. PREPARER'S NOTE: , page = 4

   5. ORIGINAL INTRODUCTION TO INGRAM'S EDITION [1823], page = 5

   6. THE ANGLO-SAXON CHRONICLE, page = 13

   7. Part I, page = 13

   8. Part II, page = 31

   9. Part III, page = 48

   10. Part IV, page = 63

   11. Part V, page = 77

   12. Part VI, page = 90

   13. Part VII, page = 103